Project Gutenberg Etext The American Republic, by O. A. Brownson


Copyright laws are changing all over the world, be sure to check
the copyright laws for your country before posting these files!!

Please take a look at the important information in this header.
We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
electronic path open for the next readers.  Do not remove this.


**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**

**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**

*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*

Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
further information is included below.  We need your donations.


The American Republic

by O. A. Brownson

January, 2000  [Etext #2053]


Project Gutenberg Etext The American Republic, by O. A. Brownson
******This file should be named amrep10.txt or amrep10.zip******

Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, amrep11.txt
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, amrep10a.txt


Project Gutenberg Etexts are usually created from multiple editions,
all of which are in the Public Domain in the United States, unless a
copyright notice is included.  Therefore, we usually do NOT keep any
of these books in compliance with any particular paper edition.


We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing.

Please note:  neither this list nor its contents are final till
midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month.  A
preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
and editing by those who wish to do so.  To be sure you have an
up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
in the first week of the next month.  Since our ftp program has
a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
new copy has at least one byte more or less.


Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)

We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work.  The
time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours
to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc.  This
projected audience is one hundred million readers.  If our value
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
million dollars per hour this year as we release thirty-six text
files per month, or 432 more Etexts in 1999 for a total of 2000+
If these reach just 10% of the computerized population, then the
total should reach over 200 billion Etexts given away this year.

The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
Files by December 31, 2001.  [10,000 x 100,000,000 = 1 Trillion]
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
which is only ~5% of the present number of computer users.

At our revised rates of production, we will reach only one-third
of that goal by the end of 2001, or about 3,333 Etexts unless we
manage to get some real funding; currently our funding is mostly
from Michael Hart's salary at Carnegie-Mellon University, and an
assortment of sporadic gifts; this salary is only good for a few
more years, so we are looking for something to replace it, as we
don't want Project Gutenberg to be so dependent on one person.

We need your donations more than ever!


All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/CMU": and are
tax deductible to the extent allowable by law.  (CMU = Carnegie-
Mellon University).

For these and other matters, please mail to:

Project Gutenberg
P. O. Box  2782
Champaign, IL 61825

When all other email fails. . .try our Executive Director:
Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>
hart@pobox.com forwards to hart@prairienet.org and archive.org
if your mail bounces from archive.org, I will still see it, if
it bounces from prairienet.org, better resend later on. . . .

We would prefer to send you this information by email.

******

To access Project Gutenberg etexts, use any Web browser
to view http://promo.net/pg.  This site lists Etexts by
author and by title, and includes information about how
to get involved with Project Gutenberg.  You could also
download our past Newsletters, or subscribe here.  This
is one of our major sites, please email hart@pobox.com,
for a more complete list of our various sites.

To go directly to the etext collections, use FTP or any
Web browser to visit a Project Gutenberg mirror (mirror
sites are available on 7 continents; mirrors are listed
at http://promo.net/pg).

Mac users, do NOT point and click, typing works better.

Example FTP session:

ftp sunsite.unc.edu
login: anonymous
password: your@login
cd pub/docs/books/gutenberg
cd etext90 through etext99
dir [to see files]
get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
GET GUTINDEX.??  [to get a year's listing of books, e.g., GUTINDEX.99]
GET GUTINDEX.ALL [to get a listing of ALL books]

***

**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**

(Three Pages)


***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here?  You know: lawyers.
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
fault.  So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
disclaims most of our liability to you.  It also tells you how
you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.

*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
this "Small Print!" statement.  If you do not, you can receive
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
you got it from.  If you received this etext on a physical
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.

ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
Carnegie-Mellon University (the "Project").  Among other
things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
distribute it in the United States without permission and
without paying copyright royalties.  Special rules, set forth
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.

To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
works.  Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
medium they may be on may contain "Defects".  Among other
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.

LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.

If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
time to the person you received it from.  If you received it
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
copy.  If you received it electronically, such person may
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
receive it electronically.

THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS".  NO OTHER
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.

Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
may have other legal rights.

INDEMNITY
You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.

DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
or:

[1]  Only give exact copies of it.  Among other things, this
     requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
     etext or this "small print!" statement.  You may however,
     if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
     binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
     including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
     cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
     *EITHER*:

     [*]  The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
          does *not* contain characters other than those
          intended by the author of the work, although tilde
          (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
          be used to convey punctuation intended by the
          author, and additional characters may be used to
          indicate hypertext links; OR

     [*]  The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
          no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
          form by the program that displays the etext (as is
          the case, for instance, with most word processors);
          OR

     [*]  You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
          no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
          etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
          or other equivalent proprietary form).

[2]  Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
     "Small Print!" statement.

[3]  Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
     net profits you derive calculated using the method you
     already use to calculate your applicable taxes.  If you
     don't derive profits, no royalty is due.  Royalties are
     payable to "Project Gutenberg Association/Carnegie-Mellon
     University" within the 60 days following each
     date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
     your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.

WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
you can think of.  Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
Association / Carnegie-Mellon University".

*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*




THE

AMERICAN REPUBLIC:

CONSTITUTION, TENDENCIES, AND DESTINY.

BY
O. A. BROWNSON, LL. D.




TO THE
HON. GEORGE BANCROFT,
THE ERUDITE, PHILOSOPHICAL, AND ELOQUENT
Historian of the United States,

THIS FEEBLE ATTEMPT TO SET FORTH THE PRINCIPLES OF GOVERN-
MENT, AND TO EXPLAIN AND DEFEND THE CONSTITUTION OF
THE AMERICAN REPUBLIC, IS RESPECTFULLY DEDICATED,
IN MEMORY OF OLD FRIENDSHIP, AND AS A
SLIGHT HOMAGE TO GENIUS, ABILITY,
PATRIOTISM, PRIVATE WORTH,
AND PUBLIC SERVICE,
BY THE AUTHOR.



CONTENTS.

                                                             PAGE

CHAPTER I.

INTRODUCTION                                                    1


CHAPTER II.

GOVERNMENT                                                     15


CHAPTER III.

ORIGIN OF GOVERNMENT                                           26


CHAPTER IV.

ORIGIN OF GOVERMENT-Continued                                  43


CHAPTER V.

ORIGIN OF GOVERNMENT-Continued                                 71


CHAPTER VI.

ORIGIN OF GOVERNMENT-Concluded                                106


CHAPTER VII.

CONSTITUTION OF GOVERNMENT                                    136

vi
CHAPTER VIII.

CONSTITUTION OF GOVERNMENT-Concluded                          166


CHAPTER IX.

THE UNITED STATES                                             192


CHAPTER X.

CONSTITUTION OF THE UNITED STATES                             218


CHAPTER XI.

THE CONSTITUTION-Continued                                    244


CHAPTER XII.

SECESSION                                                     277


CHAPTER XIII.

RECONSTRUCTION                                                309


CHAPTER XIV.

POLITICAL TENDENCIES                                          348


CHAPTER XV.

DESTINY-POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS                               392





PREFACE.


In the volume which, with much diffidence, is here offered to the 
public, I have given, as far as I have considered it worth giving, 
my whole thought in a connected form on the nature, necessity, 
extent, authority, origin, ground, and constitution of government, 
and the unity, nationality, constitution, tendencies, and destiny 
of the American Republic.  Many of the points treated have been 
from time to time discussed or touched upon, and many of the views 
have been presented, in my previous writings; but this work is 
newly and independently written from beginning to end, and is as 
complete on the topics treated as I have been able to make it.

I have taken nothing bodily from my previous essays, but I have 
used their thoughts as far as I have judged them sound and they 
came within the scope of my present work.  I have not felt myself 
bound to adhere to my own past thoughts or expressions any farther 
than they coincide with my present convictions, and I have written 
as freely and as independently as if I had never 
viii
                                                 written or 
published any thing before.  I have never been the slave of my 
own past, and truth has always been dearer to me than my own 
opinions.  This work is not only my latest, but will be my last 
on politics or government, and must be taken as the authentic, 
and the only authentic statement of my political views and 
convictions, and whatever in any of my previous writings conflicts 
with the principles defended in its pages, must be regarded as 
retracted, and rejected.

The work now produced is based on scientific principles; but it is 
an essay rather than a scientific treatise, and even good-natured 
critics will, no doubt, pronounce it an article or a series of 
articles designed for a review, rather than a book.  It is hard to 
overcome the habits of a lifetime.  I have taken some pains to 
exchange the reviewer for the author, but am fully conscious that 
I have not succeeded.  My work can lay claim to very little 
artistic merit.  It is full of repetitions; the same thought is 
frequently recurring,--the result, to some extent, no doubt, of 
carelessness and the want of artistic skill; but to a greater 
extent, I fear, of "malice aforethought."  In composing my work I 
have followed, rather than directed, the course of my thought, 
and, having very little confidence in the memory or industry of 
readers, I have preferred, when the completeness 
ix
                                                 of the argument 
required it, to repeat myself to encumbering my pages with 
perpetual references to what has gone before.

That I attach some value to this work is evident from my consenting 
to its publication; but how much or how little of it is really 
mine, I am quite unable to say.  I have, from my youth up, been 
reading, observing, thinking, reflecting, talking, I had almost 
said writing, at least by fits and starts, on political subjects, 
especially in their connection with philosophy, theology, history, 
and social progress, and have assimilated to my own mind what it 
would assimilate, without keeping any notes of the sources whence 
the materials assimilated were derived.  I have written freely 
from my own mind as I find it now formed; but how it has been so 
formed, or whence I have borrowed, my readers know as well as I.  
All that is valuable in the thoughts set forth, it is safe to assume 
has been appropriated from others.  Where I have been distinctly 
conscious of borrowing what has not become common property, I have 
given credit, or, at least, mentioned the author's name, with three 
important exceptions which I wish to note more formally.

I am principally indebted for the view of the American nationality 
and the Federal Constitution I present, to hints and suggestions 
furnished
x
          by the remarkable work of John C. Hurd, Esq., on The Law of 
Freedom and Bondage in the United States, a work of rare learning 
and profound philosophic views.  I could not have written my work 
without the aid derived from its suggestions, any more than I 
could without Plato, Aristotle, St. Augustine, St. Thomas, 
Suarez, Pierre Leroux, and the Abbate Gioberti.  To these two 
last-named authors, one a humanitarian sophist, the other a 
Catholic priest, and certainly one of the profoundest 
philosophical writers of this century, I am much indebted, though 
I have followed the political system of neither.  I have taken 
from Leroux the germs of the doctrine I set forth on the solidarity 
of the race, and from Gioberti the doctrine I defend in relation 
to the creative act, which is, after all, simply that of the 
Credo and the first verse of Genesis.

In treating the several questions which the preparation of this 
volume has brought up, in their connection, and in the light of 
first principles, I have changed or modified, on more than one 
important point, the views I had expressed in my previous 
writings, especially on the distinction between civilized and 
barbaric nations, the real basis of civilization itself, and the 
value to the world of the Graeco-Roman civilization.  I have 
ranked feudalism under the head of barbarism,
xi
                                              rejected every 
species of political aristocracy, and represented the English 
constitution as essentially antagonistic to the American, not as 
its type.  I have accepted universal suffrage in principle, and 
defended American democracy, which I define to be territorial 
democracy, and carefully distinguish from pure individualism on 
the one hand, and from pure socialism or humanitarianism on the 
other.

I reject the doctrine of State sovereignty, which I held and 
defended from 1828 to 1861, but still maintain that the 
sovereignty of the American Republic vests in the States, though 
in the States collectively, or united, not severally, and thus 
escape alike consolidation and disintegration.  I find, with Mr. 
Madison, our most philosophic statesman, the originality of the 
American system in the division of powers between a General 
government having sole charge of the foreign and general, and 
particular or State governments having, within their respective 
territories, sole charge of the particular relations and 
interests of the American people; but I do not accept his 
concession that this division is of conventional origin, and 
maintain that it enters into the original Providential 
constitution of the American state, as I have done in my Review 
for October, 1863, and January and October, 1864.
xii
I maintain, after Mr.  Senator Sumner, one of the most 
philosophic and accomplished living American statesmen, that 
"State secession is State suicide," but modify the opinion I too 
hastily expressed that the political death of a State dissolves 
civil society within its territory and abrogates all rights held 
under it, and accept the doctrine that the laws in force at the 
time of secession remain in force till superseded or abrogated by 
competent authority, and also that, till the State is revived and 
restored as a State in the Union, the only authority, under the 
American system, competent to supersede or abrogate them is the 
United States, not Congress, far less the Executive.  The error 
of the Government is not in recognizing the territorial laws as 
surviving secession but in counting a State that has seceded as 
still a State in the Union, with the right to be counted as one 
of the United States in amending the Constitution.  Such State 
goes out of the Union, but comes under it.

I have endeavored throughout to refer my particular political 
views; to their general principles, and to show that the general 
principles asserted have their origin and ground in the great, 
universal, and unchanging principles of the universe itself.  
Hence, I have labored to show the scientific relations of 
political to theological principles, the
xiii.
                                         real principles of all 
science, as of all reality.  An atheist, I have said, may be a 
politician; but if there were no God, there could be no politics.  
This may offend the sciolists of the age, but I must follow 
science where it leads, and cannot be arrested by those who 
mistake their darkness for light.

I write throughout as a Christian, because I am a Christian; as 
a Catholic, because all Christian principles, nay, all real 
principles are catholic, and there is nothing sectarian either 
in nature or revelation.  I am a Catholic by God's grace and 
great goodness, and must write as I am.  I could not write 
otherwise if I would, and would not if I could.  I have not 
obtruded my religion, and have referred to it only where my 
argument demanded it; but I have had neither the weakness nor 
the bad taste to seek to conceal or disguise it.  I could never 
have written my book without the knowledge I have, as a Catholic, 
of Catholic theology, and my acquaintance, slight as it is, with 
the great fathers and doctors of the church, the great masters of 
all that is solid or permanent in modern thought, either with 
Catholics or non-Catholics.

Moreover, though I write for all Americans, without distinction 
of sect or party, I have had more especially in view the people 
of my own
xiv
          religious communion.  It is no discredit to a man in 
the United States at the present day to be a firm, sincere, and 
devout Catholic.  The old sectarian prejudice may remain with a 
few, "whose eyes," as Emerson says, "are in their hind-head, not 
in their fore-head;" but the American people are not at heart 
sectarian, and the nothingarianism so prevalent among them only 
marks their state of transition from sectarian opinions to 
positive Catholic faith.  At any rate, it can no longer be 
denied that Catholics are an integral, living, and growing 
element in the American population, quite too numerous, too 
wealthy, and too influential to be ignored.  They have played too 
conspicuous a part in the late troubles of the country, and 
poured out too freely and too much of their richest and noblest 
blood in defence of the unity of the nation and the integrity of 
its domain, for that.  Catholics henceforth must be treated as 
standing, in all respects, on a footing of equality with any 
other class of American citizens, and their views of political 
science, or of any other science, be counted of equal importance, 
and listened to with equal attention.

I have no fears that my book will be neglected because avowedly 
by a Catholic author, and from a Catholic publishing house.  They
xv
who are not Catholics will read it, and it will enter into the 
current of American literature, if it is one they must read in 
order to be up with the living and growing thought of the age.  
If it is not a book of that sort, it is not worth reading by any 
one.

Furthermore, I am ambitious, even in my old age, and I wish to 
exert an influence on the future of my country, for which I have 
made, or, rather, my family have made, some sacrifices, and which 
I tenderly love.  Now, I believe that he who can exert the most 
influence on our Catholic population, especially in giving tone 
and direction to our Catholic youth, will exert the most 
influence in forming the character and shaping the future destiny 
of the American Republic.  Ambition and patriotism alike, as well 
as my own Catholic faith and sympathies, induce me to address 
myself primarily to Catholics.  I quarrel with none of the sects; 
I honor virtue wherever I see it, and accept truth wherever I 
find it; but, in my belief, no sect is destined to a long life, 
or a permanent possession.  I engage in no controversy with any 
one not of my religion, for, if the positive, affirmative truth 
is brought out and placed in a clear light before the public, 
whatever is sectarian in any of the sects will disappear as the 
morning mists before the rising sun.

xvi
I expect the most intelligent and satisfactory appreciation of 
my book from the thinking and educated classes among Catholics; 
but I speak to my countrymen at large.  I could not personally 
serve my country in the field: my habits as well as my 
infirmities prevented, to say nothing of my age; but I have 
endeavored in this humble work to add my contribution, small 
though it may be, to political science, and to discharge, as far 
as I am able, my debt of loyalty and patriotism.  I would the 
book were more of a book, more worthy of my countrymen, and a 
more weighty proof of the love I beat them, and with which I have 
written it.  All I can say is, that it is an honest book, a 
sincere book, and contains my best thoughts on the subjects 
treated.  If well received, I shall be grateful; if neglected, I 
shall endeavor to practise resignation, as I have so often done.


O. A. BROWNSON.

ELIZABETH, N. J., September 16, 1865.





CHAPTER I

INTRODUCTION


The ancients summed up the whole of human wisdom in the maxim, 
Know Thyself, and certainly there is for an individual no more 
important as there is no more difficult knowledge, than knowledge 
of himself, whence he comes, whither he goes, what he is, what he 
is for, what he can do, what he ought to do, and what are his 
means of doing it.

Nations are only individuals on a larger scale.  They have a 
life, an individuality, a reason, a conscience, and instincts of 
their own, and have the same general laws of development and 
growth, and, perhaps, of decay, as the individual man.  Equally 
important, and no less difficult than for the individual, is it 
for a nation to know itself, understand its own existence, its 
own powers and faculties, rights and duties, constitution, 
instincts, tendencies, and
2
                           destiny.  A nation has a spiritual as 
well as a material, a moral as well as a physical existence, and 
is subjected to internal as well as external conditions of health 
and virtue, greatness and grandeur, which it must in some measure 
understand and observe, or become weak and infirm, stunted in its 
growth, and end in premature decay and death.

Among nations, no one has more need of full knowledge of itself 
than the United States, and no one has hitherto had less.  It has 
hardly had a distinct consciousness of its own national existence, 
and has lived the irreflective life of the child, with no severe 
trial, till the recent rebellion, to throw it back on itself and 
compel it to reflect on its own constitution, its own separate 
existence, individuality, tendencies, and end.  The defection of 
the slaveholding States, and the fearful struggle that has 
followed for national unity and integrity, have brought it at 
once to a distinct recognition of itself, and forced it to pass 
from thoughtless, careless, heedless, reckless adolescence to 
grave and reflecting manhood.  The nation has been suddenly 
compelled to study itself, and henceforth must act from 
reflection, understanding, science, statesmanship, not from 
instinct, impulse, passion, or caprice, knowing well what
3
                                                          it does, 
and wherefore it does it.  The change which four years of civil 
war have wrought in the nation is great, and is sure to give it 
the seriousness, the gravity, the dignity, the manliness it has 
heretofore lacked.

Though the nation has been brought to a consciousness of its own 
existence, it has not, even yet, attained to a full and clear 
understanding of its own national constitution.  Its vision is 
still obscured by the floating mists of its earlier morning, and 
its judgment rendered indistinct and indecisive by the wild 
theories and fancies of its childhood.  The national mind has 
been quickened, the national heart has been opened, the national 
disposition prepared, but there remains the important work of 
dissipating the mists that still linger, of brushing away these 
wild theories and fancies, and of enabling it to form a clear 
and intelligent judgment of itself, and a true and just 
appreciation of its own constitution tendencies,--and destiny; 
or, in other words, of enabling the nation to understand its own 
idea, and the means of its actualization in space and time.

Every living nation has an idea given it by Providence to 
realize, and whose realization is its special work, mission, or 
destiny.  Every nation is, in some sense, a chosen people of
4
                                                             God.  
The Jews were the chosen people of God, through whom the 
primitive traditions were to be preserved in their purity and 
integrity, and the Messiah was to come.  The Greeks were the 
chosen people of God, for the development and realization of the 
beautiful or the divine splendor in art, and of the true in 
science and philosophy; and the Romans, for the development of 
the state, law, and jurisprudence.  The great despotic nations of 
Asia were never properly nations; or if they were nations with a 
mission, they proved false to it--, and count for nothing in the 
progressive development of the human race.  History has not 
recorded their mission, and as far as they are known they have 
contributed only to the abnormal development or corruption of 
religion and civilization.  Despotism is barbaric and abnormal.

The United States, or the American Republic, has a mission, and 
is chosen of God for the realization of a great idea.  It has 
been chosen not only to continue the work assigned to Greece and 
Rome, but to accomplish a greater work than was assigned to 
either.  In art, it will prove false to its mission if it do not 
rival Greece; and in science and philosophy, if it do not surpass 
it.  In the state, in law, in jurisprudence, it must continue and 
surpass Rome.  Its idea
5
                        is liberty, indeed, but liberty with law, 
and law with liberty.  Yet its mission is not so much the 
realization of liberty as the realization of the true idea of the 
state, which secures at once the authority of the public and the 
freedom of the individual--the sovereignty of the people without 
social despotism, and individual freedom without anarchy.  In 
other words, its mission is to bring out in its life the 
dialectic union of authority and liberty, of the natural rights 
of man and those of society.  The Greek and Roman republics 
asserted the state to the detriment of individual freedom; modern 
republics either do the same, or assert individual freedom to the 
detriment of the state.  The American republic has been 
instituted by Providence to realize the freedom of each with 
advantage to the other.

The real mission of the United States is to introduce and 
establish a political constitution, which, while it retains all 
the advantages of the constitutions of states thus far known, is 
unlike any of them, and secures advantages which none of them did 
or could possess.  The American constitution has no prototype in 
any prior constitution.  The American form of government can be 
classed throughout with none of the forms of government described 
by Aristotle, or
6
                 even by later authorities.  Aristotle knew only 
four forms of government: Monarchy, Aristocracy, Democracy, and 
Mixed Governments.  The American form is none of these, nor any 
combination of them.  It is original, a new contribution to 
political science, and seeks to attain the end of all wise and 
just government by means unknown or forbidden to the ancients, 
and which have been but imperfectly comprehended even by American 
political writers themselves.  The originality of the American 
constitution has been overlooked by the great majority even of 
our own statesmen, who seek to explain it by analogies borrowed 
from the constitutions of other states rather than by a profound 
study of its own principles.  They have taken too low a view of 
it, and have rarely, if ever, appreciated its distinctive and 
peculiar merits.

As the United States have vindicated their national unity and 
integrity, and are preparing to take a new start in history, 
nothing is more important than that they should take that new 
start with a clear and definite view of their national 
constitution, and with a distinct understanding of their 
political mission in the future of the world.  The citizen who 
can help his countrymen to do this will render them an im-
7
                                                         portant 
service and deserve well of his country, though he may have been 
unable to serve in her armies and defend her on the battle-field.  
The work now to be done by American statesmen is even more 
difficult and more delicate than that which has been accomplished 
by our brave armies.  As yet the people are hardly better 
prepared for the political work to be done than they were at the 
outbreak of the civil war for the military work they have so 
nobly achieved.  But, with time, patience, and good-will, the 
difficulties may be overcome, the errors of the past corrected, 
and the Government placed on the right track for the future.

It will hardly be questioned that either the constitution of the 
United States is very defective or it has been very grossly 
misinterpreted by all parties.  If the slave States had not held 
that the States are severally sovereign, and the Constitution of 
the United States a simple agreement or compact, they would never 
have seceded; and if the Free States had not confounded the Union 
with the General government, and shown a tendency to make it the 
entire national government, no occasion or pretext for secession 
would have been given.  The great problem of our statesmen has 
been from the first, How to assert union without
8
                                                 consolidation, 
and State rights without disintegration?  Have they, as yet, 
solved that problem?  The war has silenced the State sovereignty 
doctrine, indeed, but has it done so without lesion to State 
rights?  Has it done it without asserting the General government 
as the supreme, central, or national government?  Has it done it 
without striking a dangerous blow at the federal element of the 
constitution?  In suppressing by armed force the doctrine that 
the States are severally sovereign, what barrier is left against 
consolidation?  Has not one danger been removed only to give 
place to another?

But perhaps the constitution itself, if rightly understood, 
solves the problem; and perhaps the problem itself is raised 
precisely through misunderstanding of the constitution.  Our 
statesmen have recognized no constitution of the American people 
themselves; they have confined their views to the written 
constitution, as if that constituted the American people a state 
or nation, instead of being, as it is, only a law ordained by the 
nation already existing and constituted.  Perhaps, if they had 
recognized and studied the constitution which preceded that drawn 
up by the Convention of 1787, and which is intrinsic, inherent in 
the
9
    republic itself, they would have seen that it solves the 
problem, and asserts national unity without consolidation, and 
the rights of the several States without danger of disintegration.  
The whole controversy, possibly, has originated in a 
misunderstanding of the real constitution of the United States, 
and that misunderstanding itself in the misunderstanding of the 
origin and constitution of government in general.  The 
constitution, as will appear in the course of this essay is not 
defective; and all that is necessary to guard against either 
danger is to discard all our theories of the constitution, and 
return and adhere to the constitution itself, as it really is and 
always has been.

There is no doubt that the question of Slavery had much to do 
with the rebellion, but it was not its sole cause.  The real 
cause must be sought in the program that had been made, 
especially in the States themselves, in forming and administering 
their respective governments, as well as the General government, 
in accordance with political theories borrowed from European 
speculators on government, the socalled Liberals and 
Revolutionists, which have and can have no legitimate application 
in the United States.  The tendency of American politics, for the 
last thirty or forty years, has
10
                                been, within the several States 
themselves, in the direction of centralized democracy, as if the 
American people had for their mission only the reproduction of 
ancient Athens.  The American system is not that of any of the 
simple forms of government, nor any combination of them.  The 
attempt to bring it under any of the simple or mixed forms of 
government recognized by political writers, is an attempt to 
clothe the future in the cast-off garments of the past.  The 
American system, wherever practicable, is better than monarchy, 
better than aristocracy, better than simple democracy, better 
than any possible combination of these several forms, because it 
accords more nearly with the principles of things, the real order 
of the universe.

But American statesmen have studied the constitutions of other 
states more than that of their own, and have succeeded in 
obscuring the American system in the minds of the people, and 
giving them in its place pure and simple democracy, which is its 
false development or corruption.  Under the influence of this 
false development, the people were fast losing sight of the 
political truth that, though the people are sovereign, it is the 
organic, not the inorganic people, the territorial people, not 
the people as
11
              simple population, and were beginning to assert the 
absolute God-given right of the majority to govern.  All the 
changes made in the bosom of the States themselves have consisted 
in removing all obstacles to the irresponsible will of the 
majority, leaving minorities and individuals at their mercy.  
This tendency to a centralized democracy had more to do with 
provoking secession and rebellion than the anti-slavery 
sentiments of the Northern, Central, and Western States.

The failure of secession and the triumph of the National cause, 
in spite of the short-sightedness and blundering of the 
Administration, have proved the vitality and strength of the 
national constitution, and the greatness of the American people.  
They say nothing for or against the democratic theory of our 
demagogues, but every thing in favor of the American system or 
constitution of government, which has found a firmer support in 
American instincts than in American statesmanship.  In spite of 
all that had been done by theorists, radicals, and revolutionists, 
no-government men, non-resistants, humanitarians, and sickly 
sentimentalists to corrupt the American people in mind, heart, 
and body, the native vigor of their national constitution has 
enabled them to come forth 
12
                           triumphant from the trial.  Every 
American patriot has reason to be proud of his country-men, and 
every American lover of freedom to be satisfied with the 
institutions of his country.  But there is danger that the 
politicians and demagogues will ascribe the merit, not to the 
real and living national constitution, but to their miserable 
theories of that constitution, and labor to aggravate the several 
evils and corrupt tendencies which caused the rebellion it has 
cost so much to suppress.  What is now wanted is, that the people, 
whose instincts are right, should understand the American 
constitution as it is, and so understand it as to render it 
impossible for political theorists, no matter of what school or 
party, to deceive them again as to its real import, or induce 
them to depart from it in their political action.

A work written with temper, without passion or sectional 
prejudice, in a philosophical spirit, explaining to the American 
people their own national constitution, and the mutual relations 
of the General government and the State governments, cannot, at 
this important crisis in our affairs, be inopportune, and, if 
properly executed, can hardly fail to be of real service.  Such a 
work is now attempted--would it were by another and abler hand--
13
which, imperfect as it is, may at least offer some useful 
suggestions, give a right direction to political thought, 
although it should fail to satisfy the mind of the reader.

This much the author may say, in favor of his own work, that it 
sets forth no theory of government in general, or of the United 
States in particular.  The author is not a monarchist, an 
aristocrat, a democrat, a feudalist, nor an advocate of what are 
called mixed governments like the English, at least for his own 
country; but is simply an American, devoted to the real, living, 
and energizing constitution of the American republic as it is, 
not as some may fancy it might be, or are striving to make it.  
It is, in his judgment, what it ought to be, and he has no other 
ambition than to present it as it is to the understanding and 
love of his countrymen.

Perhaps simple artistic unity and propriety would require the 
author to commence his essay directly with the United States; but 
while the constitution of the United States is original and 
peculiar, the government of the United States has necessarily 
something in common with all legitimate governments, and he has 
thought it best to precede his discussion of the American 
republic, its constitution, tenden-
14
                                  cies, and destiny, by some 
considerations on government in general.  He does this because he 
believes, whether rightly or not, that while the American people 
have received from Providence a most truly profound and admirable 
system of government, they are more or less infected with the 
false theories of government which have been broached during the 
last two centuries.  In attempting to realize these theories, 
they have already provoked or rendered practicable a rebellion 
which has seriously threatened the national existence, and come 
very near putting an end to the American order of civilization 
itself.  These theories have received already a shock in the 
minds of all serious and thinking men; but the men who think are 
in every nation a small minority, and it is necessary to give 
these theories a public refutation, and bring back those who do 
not think, as well as those who do, from the world of dreams to 
the world of reality.  It is hoped, therefore, that any apparent 
want of artistic unity or symmetry in the essay will be pardoned 
for the sake of the end the author has had in view.






CHAPTER II.

GOVERNMENT.


Man is a dependent being, and neither does nor can suffice for 
himself.  He lives not in himself, but lives and moves and has 
his being in God.  He exists, develops, and fulfils his existence 
only by communion with God, through which he participates of the 
divine being and life.  He communes with God through the divine 
creative act and the Incarnation of the Word, through his kind, 
and through the material world.  Communion with God through 
Creation and Incarnation is religion, distinctively taken, which 
binds man to God as his first cause, and carries him onward to 
God as his final cause; communion through the material world is 
expressed by the word property; and communion with God through 
humanity is society.  Religion, society, property, are the three 
terms that embrace the whole of man's life, and express the 
essential means and conditions of his existence, his development, 
and his perfec-
16
               tion, or the fulfilment of his existence, the 
attainment of the end for which he is created.

Though society, or the communion of man with his Maker through 
his kind, is not all that man needs in order to live, to grow, 
to actualize the possibilities of his nature, and to attain to 
his beatitude, since humanity is neither God nor the material 
universe, it is yet a necessary and essential condition of his 
life, his progress, and the completion of his existence.  He is 
born and lives in society, and can be born and live nowhere else.  
It is one of the necessities of his nature.  "God saw that it was 
not good for man to be alone."  Hence, wherever man is found he 
is found in society, living in more or less strict intercourse 
with his kind.

But society never does and never can exist without government of 
some sort.  As society is a necessity of man's nature, so is 
government a necessity of society.  The simplest form of society 
is the family--Adam and Eve.  But though Adam and Eve are in many 
respects equal, and have equally important though different parts 
assigned them, one or the other must be head and governor, or 
they cannot form the society called family.  They would be simply 
two individuals of different sexes, and the family would fail for 
the want of unity.

17
Children cannot be reared, trained, or educated without some 
degree of family government, of some authority to direct, 
control, restrain, or prescribe.  Hence the authority of the 
husband and father is recognized by the common consent of 
mankind.  Still more apparent is the necessity of government the 
moment the family develops and grows into the tribe, and the 
tribe into the nation.  Hence no nation exists without 
government; and we never find a savage tribe, however low or 
degraded, that does not assert somewhere in the father, in the 
elders, or in the tribe itself, the rude outlines or the faint 
reminiscences of some sort of government, with authority to 
demand obedience and to punish the refractory.  Hence, as man is 
nowhere found out of society, so nowhere is society found without 
government.

Government is necessary: but let it be remarked by the way, that 
its necessity does not grow exclusively or chiefly out of the 
fact that the human race by sin has fallen from its primitive 
integrity, or original righteousness.  The fall asserted by 
Christian theology, though often misinterpreted, and its effects 
underrated or exaggerated, is a fact too sadly confirmed by 
individual experience and universal history; but it is not the 
cause why government is neces-
18
                             sary, though it may be an additional 
reason for demanding it.  Government would have been necessary if 
man had not sinned, and it is needed for the good as well as for 
the bad.  The law was promulgated in the Garden, while man 
retained his innocence and remained in the integrity of his 
nature.  It exists in heaven as well as on earth, and in heaven 
in its perfection.  Its office is not purely repressive, to 
restrain violence, to redress wrongs, and to punish the 
transgressor.  It has something more to do than to restrict our 
natural liberty, curb our passions, and maintain justice between 
man and man.  Its office is positive as well as negative.  It is 
needed to render effective the solidarity of the individuals of a 
nation, and to render the nation an organism, not a mere 
organization--to combine men in one living body, and to 
strengthen all with the strength of each, and each with the 
strength of all--to develop, strengthen, and sustain individual 
liberty, and to utilize and direct it to the promotion of the 
common weal--to be a social providence, imitating in its order 
and degree the action of the divine providence itself, and, while 
it provides for the common good of all, to protect each, the 
lowest and meanest, with the whole force and majesty of society.  
It is the minister of wrath to wrong-
19
                                    doers, indeed, but its nature 
is beneficent, and its action defines and protects the right of 
property, creates and maintains a medium in which religion can 
exert her supernatural energy, promotes learning, fosters science 
and art, advances civilization, and contributes as a powerful 
means to the fulfilment by man of the Divine purpose in his 
existence.  Next after religion, it is man's greatest good; and 
even religion without it can do only a small portion of her work.  
They wrong it who call it a necessary evil; it is a great good, 
and, instead of being distrusted, hated, or resisted, except in 
its abuses, it should be loved, respected, obeyed, and if need 
be, defended at the cost of all earthly goods, and even of life 
itself.

The nature or essence of government is to govern.  A government 
that does not govern, is simply no government at all.  If it has 
not the ability to govern and governs not, it may be an agency, 
an instrument in the bands of individuals for advancing their 
private interests, but it is not government.  To be government it 
must govern both individuals and the community.  If it is a mere 
machine for making prevail the will of one man, of a certain 
number of men, or even of the community, it may be very effective 
sometimes for good, sometimes
20
                              for evil, oftenest for evil, but 
government in the proper sense of the word it is not.  To govern 
is to direct, control, restrain, as the pilot controls and 
directs his ship.  It necessarily implies two terms, governor and 
governed, and a real distinction between them.  The denial of all 
real distinction between governor and governed is an error in 
politics analogous to that in philosophy or theology of denying 
all real distinction between creator and creature, God and the 
universe, which all the world knows is either pantheism or pure 
atheism--the supreme sophism.  If we make governor and governed 
one and the same, we efface both terms; for there is no governor 
nor governed, if the will that governs is identically the will 
that is governed.  To make the controller and the controlled the 
same is precisely to deny all control.  There must, then, if 
there is government at all, be a power, force, or will that 
governs, distinct from that which is governed.  In those 
governments in which it is held that the people govern, the 
people governing do and must act in a diverse relation from the 
people governed, or there is no real government.

Government is not only that which governs, but that which has the 
right or authority to govern.  Power without right is not 
govern-
21
      ment.  Governments have the right to use force at need, but 
might does not make right, and not every power wielding the 
physical force of a nation is to be regarded as its rightful 
government.  Whatever resort to physical force it may be obliged 
to make, either in defence of its authority or of the rights of 
the nation, the government itself lies in the moral order, and 
politics is simply a branch of ethics--that branch which treats 
of the rights and duties of men in their public relations, as 
distinguished from their rights and duties in their private 
relations.

Government being not only that which governs, but that which has 
the right to govern, obedience to it becomes a moral duty, not a 
mere physical necessity.  The right to govern and the duty to 
obey are correlatives, and the one cannot exist or be conceived 
without the other.  Hence loyalty is not simply an amiable 
sentiment but a duty, a moral virtue.  Treason is not merely a 
difference in political opinion with the governing authority, but 
a crime against the sovereign, and a moral wrong, therefore a sin 
against God, the Founder of the moral Law.  Treason, if committed 
in other Countries, unhappily, has been more frequently termed by 
our countrymen Patriotism and loaded with honor than branded as a 
crime, the
22
           greatest of crimes, as it is, that human governments 
have authority to punish.  The American people have been chary of 
the word loyalty, perhaps because they regard it as the 
correlative of royalty; but loyalty is rather the correlative of 
law, and is, in its essence, love and devotion to the sovereign 
authority, however constituted or wherever lodged.  It is as 
necessary, as much a duty, as much a virtue in republics as in 
monarchies; and nobler examples of the most devoted loyalty are 
not found in the world's history than were exhibited in the 
ancient Greek and Roman republics, or than have been exhibited by 
both men and women in the young republic of the United States.  
Loyalty is the highest, noblest, and most generous of human 
virtues, and is the human element of that sublime love or charity 
which the inspired Apostle tells us is the fulfilment of the law.  
It has in it the principle of devotion, of self-sacrifice, and 
is, of all human virtues, that which renders man the most 
Godlike.  There is nothing great, generous, good, or heroic of 
which a truly loyal people are not capable, and nothing mean, 
base, cruel, brutal, criminal, detestable, not to be expected of 
a really disloyal people.  Such a people no generous sentiment 
can move, no love can bind.  It mocks at duty, scorns vir-
23
                                                         tue, 
tramples on all rights, and holds no person, no thing, human or 
divine, sacred or inviolable.  The assertion of government as 
lying in the moral order, defines civil liberty, and reconciles 
it with authority.  Civil liberty is freedom to do whatever one 
pleases that authority permits or does not forbid.  Freedom to 
follow in all things one's own will or inclination, without any 
civil restraint, is license, not liberty.  There is no lesion to 
liberty in repressing license, nor in requiring obedience to the 
commands of the authority that has the right to command.  Tyranny 
or oppression is not in being subjected to authority, but in 
being subjected to usurped authority--to a power that has no 
right to command, or that commands what exceeds its right or its 
authority.  To say that it is contrary to liberty to be forced to 
forego our own will or inclination in any case whatever, is 
simply denying the right of all government, and falling into 
no-governmentism.  Liberty is violated only when we are required 
to forego our own will or inclination by a power that has no 
right to make the requisition; for we are bound to obedience as 
far as authority has right to govern, and we can never have the 
right to disobey a rightful command.  The requisition, if made by 
right-
24
     ful authority, then, violates no right that we have or can 
have, and where there is no violation of our rights there is no 
violation of our liberty.  The moral right of authority, which 
involves the moral duty of obedience, presents, then, the ground 
on which liberty and authority may meet in peace and operate to 
the same end.

This has no resemblance to the slavish doctrine of passive 
obedience, and that the resistance to power can never be lawful.  
The tyrant may be lawfully resisted, for the tyrant, by force of 
the word itself, is a usurper, and without authority.  Abuses of 
power may be resisted even by force when they become too great to 
be endured, when there is no legal or regular way of redressing 
them, and when there is a reasonable prospect that resistance 
will prove effectual and substitute something better in their 
place.  But it is never lawful to resist the rightful sovereign, 
for it can never be right to resist right, and the rightful 
sovereign in the constitutional exercise of his power can never 
be said to abuse it.  Abuse is the unconstitutional or wrongful 
exercise of a power rightfully held, and when it is not so 
exercised there is no abuse or abuses to redress.  All turns, 
then, on the right of power, or its legitimacy.  Whence does 
government de-
25
             rive its right to govern?  What is the origin and 
ground of sovereignty?  This question is fundamental and without 
a true answer to it politics cannot be a science, and there can 
be no scientific statesmanship.  Whence, then, comes the 
sovereign right to govern?





26
CHAPTER III.

ORIGIN OF GOVERNMENT


Government is both a fact and a right.  Its origin as a fact, is 
simply a question of history; its origin as a right or authority 
to govern, is a question of ethics.  Whether a certain territory 
and its population are a sovereign state or nation, or 
not--whether the actual ruler of a country is its rightful ruler, 
or not--is to be determined by the historical facts in the case; 
but whence the government derives its right to govern, is a 
question that can be solved only by philosophy, or, philosophy 
failing, only by revelation.

Political writers, not carefully distinguishing between the fact 
and the right, have invented various theories as to the origin of 
government, among which may be named--
I. Government originates in the right of the father to govern his 
child.
II. It originates in convention, and is a social compact.
27
III. It originates in the people, who, collectively taken, are 
sovereign.
IV. Government springs from the spontaneous development of nature.
V. It derives its right from the immediate and express 
appointment of God;--
VI. From God through the Pope, or visible head of the spiritual 
society;--
VII. From God through the people;--
VIII. From God through the natural law.

I. The first theory is sound, if the question is confined to the 
origin of government as a fact.  The patriarchal system is the 
earliest known system of government, and unmistakable traces of 
it are found in nearly all known governments--in the tribes of 
Arabia and Northern Africa, the Irish septs and the Scottish 
clans, the Tartar hordes, the Roman qentes, and the Russian and 
Hindoo villages.  The right of the father was held to be his 
right to govern his family or household, which, with his children, 
included his wife and servants.  From the family to the tribe the 
transition is natural and easy, as also from the tribe to the 
nation.  The father is chief of the family; the chief of the 
eldest family is chief of the tribe; the chief of the eldest 
tribe becomes chief of the nation,
28
                                   and, as such, king or monarch.  
The heads of families collected in a senate form an aristocracy, 
and the families themselves, represented by their delegates, or 
publicly assembling for public affairs, constitute a democracy.  
These three forms, with their several combinations, to wit, 
monarchy, aristocracy, democracy, and mixed governments, are all 
the forms known to Aristotle, and have generally been held to be 
all that are possible.

Historically, all governments have, in some sense, been developed 
from the patriarchal, as all society has been developed from the 
family.  Even those governments, like the ancient Roman and the 
modern feudal, which seem to be founded on landed property, may 
be traced back to a patriarchal origin.  The patriarch is sole 
proprietor, and the possessions of the family are vested in him, 
and he governs as proprietor as well as father.  In the tribe, 
the chief is the proprietor, and in the nation, the king is the 
landlord, and holds the domain.  Hence, the feudal baron is 
invested with his fief by the suzerain, holds it from him, and to 
him it escheats when forfeited or vacant.  All the great Asiatic 
kings of ancient or modern times hold the domain and govern as 
proprietors; they have the authority of the father and
29
                                                       the owner; 
and their subjects, though theoretically their children, are 
really their slaves.

In Rome, however, the proprietary right undergoes an important 
transformation.  The father retains all the power of the 
patriarch within his family, the patrician in his gens or house, 
but, outside of it, is met and controlled by the city or state.  
The heads of houses are united in the senate, and collectively 
constitute and govern the state.  Yet, not all the heads of 
houses have seats in the senate, but only the tenants of the 
sacred territory of the city, which has been surveyed and marked 
by the god Terminus.  Hence the great plebeian houses, often 
richer and nobler than the patrician, were excluded from all 
share in the government and the honors of the state, because they 
were not tenants of any portion of the sacred territory.  There 
is here the introduction of an element which is not patriarchal, 
and which transforms the patriarch or chief of a tribe into the 
city or state, and founds the civil order, or what is now called 
civilization.  The city or state takes the place of the private 
proprietor, and territorial rights take the place of purely 
personal rights.

In the theory of the Roman law, the land owns the man, not the 
man the land.  When land was transferred to a new tenant, the 
prac-
30
    tice in early times was to bury him in it, in order to 
indicate that it took possession of him, received, accepted, or 
adopted him; and it was only such persons as were taken 
possession of, accepted or adopted by the sacred territory or 
domain that, though denizens of Rome, were citizens with full 
political rights.  This, in modern language, means that the state 
is territorial, not personal, and that the citizen appertains to 
the state, not the state to the citizen.  Under the patriarchal, 
the tribal, and the Asiatic monarchical systems, there is, 
properly speaking, no state, no citizens, and the organization is 
economical rather than political.  Authority--even the nation 
itself--is personal, not territorial.  The patriarch, the chief 
of the tribe, or the king, is the only proprietor.  Under the 
Graeco-Roman system all this is transformed.  The nation is 
territorial as well as personal, and the real proprietor is the 
city or state.  Under the Empire, no doubt, what lawyers call the 
eminent domain was vested in the emperor, but only as the 
representative and trustee of the city or state.

When or by what combination of events this transformation was 
effected, history does not inform us.  The first-born of Adam, we 
are told, built a city, and called it after his son
31
                                                    Enoch; but 
there is no evidence that it was constituted a municipality.  The 
earliest traces of the civil order proper are found in the Greek 
and Italian republics, and its fullest and grandest developments 
are found in Rome, imperial as well as republican.  It was no 
doubt preceded by the patriarchal system, and was historically 
developed from it, but by way of accretion rather than by simple 
explication.  It has in it an element that, if it exists in the 
patriarchal constitution, exists there only in a different form, 
and the transformation marks the passage from the economical 
order to the political, from the barbaric to the civil 
constitution of society, or from barbarism to civilization.

The word civilization stands opposed to barbarism, and is derived 
from civitas--city or state.  The Greeks and Romans call all 
tribes and nations in which authority is vested in the chief, as 
distinguished from the state, barbarians.  The origin of the word 
barbarian, barbarus, or ........, is unknown, and its primary 
sense can be only conjectured.  Webster regards its primary sense 
as foreign, wild, fierce; but this could not have been its 
original sense; for the Greeks and Romans never termed all 
foreigners barbarians, and they applied the
32
                                            term to nations that 
had no inconsiderable culture and refinement of manners, and that 
had made respectable progress in art and sciences--the Indians, 
Persians, Medians, Chaldeans, and Assyrians.  They applied the 
term evidently in a political, not an ethical or an aesthetical 
sense, and as it would seem to designate a social order in which 
the state was not developed, and in which the nation was personal, 
not territorial, and authority was held as a private right, not 
as a public trust, or in which the domain vests in the chief or 
tribe, and not in the state; for they never term any others 
barbarians.

Republic is opposed not to monarchy, in the modern European 
sense, but to monarchy in the ancient or absolute sense.  
Lacedaemon had kings; yet it was no less republican than Athens; 
and Rome was called and was a republic under the emperors no less 
than under the consuls.  Republic, respublica, by the very force 
of the term, means the public wealth, or, in good English, the 
commonwealth; that is, government founded not on personal or 
private wealth, but on the public wealth, public territory, or 
domain, or a Government that vests authority in the nation, and 
attaches the nation to a certain definite territory.  France, 
Spain, Italy, Holland, Belgium, Denmark, even Great
33
                                                    Britain in 
substance though not in form, are all, in the strictest sense of 
the word, republican states; for the king or emperor does not 
govern in his own private right, but solely as representative of 
the power and majesty of the state.  The distinctive mark of 
republicanism is the substitution of the state for the personal 
chief, and public authority for personal or private right.  
Republicanism is really civilization as opposed to barbarism, and 
all civility, in the old Sense of the word, or Civilian in 
Italian, is republican, and is applied in modern tiles to 
breeding or refinement of manners, simply because these are 
characteristics of a republican, or polished [from ....., city] 
people.  Every people that has a real civil order, or a fully 
developed state or polity, is a republican people; and hence the 
church and her great doctors when they speak of the state as 
distinguished from the church, call it the republic, as may be 
seen by consulting even a late Encyclical of Pius IX., which some 
have interpreted wrongly in an anti-republican sense.

All tribes and nations in which the patriarchal system remains, 
or is developed without transformation, are barbaric, and really 
so regarded by all Christendom.  In civilized nations the 
patriarchal authority is transformed into
34
                                          that of the city or 
state, that is, of the republic; but in all barbarous nations it 
retains its Private and personal character.  The nation is only 
the family or tribe, and is called by the name of its ancestor, 
founder, or chief, not by a geographical denomination.  Race has 
not been supplanted by country; they are a people, not a state.  
They are not fixed to the soil, and though we may find in them 
ardent love of family, the tribe, or the chief, we never find 
among them that pure love of country or patriotism which so 
distinguished the Greeks and Romans, and is no less marked among 
modern Christian nations.  They have a family, a race, a chief or 
king, but no patria, or country.  The barbarians who overthrew 
the Roman Empire, whether of the West or the East, were nations, 
or confederacies of nations, but not states.  The nation with 
them was personal, not territorial.  Their country was wherever 
they fed their flocks and herds, pitched their tents, and 
encamped for the night.  There were Germans, but no German state, 
and even to-day the German finds his "father-land" wherever the 
German speech is spoken.  The Polish, Sclavonian, Hungarian, 
Illyrian, Italian, and other provinces held by German states, in 
which the German language is not the mother-tongue, are excluded 
from
35
     the Germanic Confederation.  The Turks, or Osmanlis, are a 
race, not a state, and are encamped, not settled, on the site of 
the Eastern Roman or Greek Empire.

Even when the barbaric nations have ceased to be nomadic, 
pastoral, or predatory nations, as the ancient Assyrians and 
Persians or modern Chinese, and have their geographical 
boundaries, they have still no state, no country.  The nation 
defines the boundaries, not the boundaries the nation.  The 
nation does not belong to the territory, but the territory to the 
nation or its chief.  The Irish and Anglo-Saxons, in former 
times, held the land in gavelkind, and the territory belonged to 
the tribe or sept; but if the tribe held it as indivisible, they 
still held it as private property.  The shah of Persia holds the 
whole Persian territory as private property, and the landholders 
among his subjects are held to be his tenants.  They hold it from 
him, not from the Persian state.

The public domain of the Greek empire is in theory the private 
domain of the Ottoman emperor or Turkish sultan.  There is in 
barbaric states no republic, no commonwealth; authority is 
parental, without being tempered by parental affection.  The 
chief is a despot, and rules with the united authority of the
36
father and the harshness of the proprietor.  He owns the land and 
his subjects.

Feudalism, established in Western Europe after the downfall of 
the Roman Empire, however modified by the Church and by 
reminiscences of Graeco-Roman civilization retained by the 
conquered, was a barbaric constitution.  The feudal monarch, as 
far as he governed at all, governed as proprietor or landholder, 
not as the representative of the commonwealth.  Under feudalism 
there are estates, but no state.  The king governs as an estate, 
the nobles hold their power as an estate, and the commons are 
represented as an estate.  The whole theory of power is, that it 
is an estate; a private right, not a public trust.  It is not 
without reason, then that the common sense of civilized nations 
terms the ages when it prevailed in Western Europe barbarous ages.

It may seem a paradox to class democracy with the barbaric 
constitutions, and yet as it is defended by many stanch 
democrats, especially European democrats and revolutionists, and 
by French and Germans settled in our own country, it is 
essentially barbaric and anti-republican.  The characteristic 
principle of barbarism is, that power is a private or personal 
right, and when democrats assert that the elective fran-
37
                                                       chise is a 
natural right of man, or that it is held by virtue of the fact 
that the elector is a man, they assert the fundamental principle 
of barbarism and despotism.  This says nothing in favor of 
restricted suffrage, or against what is called universal suffrage.  
To restrict suffrage to property-holders helps nothing, 
theoretically or practically.  Property has of itself advantages 
enough, without clothing its holders with exclusive political 
rights and privileges, and the laboring classes any day are as 
trustworthy as the business classes.  The wise statesman will 
never restrict suffrage, or exclude the poorer and more numerous 
classes from all voice in the government of their country.  
General suffrage is wise, and if Louis Philippe had had the sense 
to adopt it, and thus rally the whole nation to the support of 
his government, he would never have had to encounter the 
revolution of 1848.  The barbarism, the despotism, is not in 
universal suffrage, but in defending the elective franchise as a 
private or personal right.  It is not a private, but a political 
right, and, like all political rights, a public trust.  Extremes 
meet, and thus it is that men who imagine that they march at the 
head of the human race and lead the civilization of the age, are 
really in principle retrograding to the
38
                                        barbarism of the past, or 
taking their place with nations on whom the light of civilization 
has never yet dawned.  All is not gold that glisters.

The characteristic of barbarism is, that it makes all authority a 
private or personal right; and the characteristic of civilization 
is, that it makes it a public trust.  Barbarism knows only 
persons; civilization asserts and maintains the state.  With 
barbarians the authority of the patriarch is developed simply by 
way of explication; in civilized states it is developed by way of 
transformation.  Keeping in mind this distinction, it may be 
maintained that all systems of government, as a simple historical 
fact, have been developed from the patriarchal.  The patriarchal 
has preceded them all, and it is with the patriarchal that the 
human race has begun its career.  The family or household is not 
a state, a civil polity, but it is a government, and, 
historically considered, is the initial or inchoate state as well 
as the initial or inchoate nation.  But its simple direct 
development gives us barbarism, or what is called Oriental 
despotism, and which nowhere exists, or can exist, in Christendom.  
It is found only in pagan and Mohammedan nations; Christianity in 
the secular order is republican, and continues
39
                                               and completes the 
work of Greece and Rome.  It meets with little permanent success 
in any patriarchal or despotic nation, and must either find or 
create civilization, which has been developed from the patriarchal 
system by way of transformation.

But, though the patriarchal system is the earliest form of 
government, and all governments have been developed or modified 
from it, the right of government to govern cannot be deduced from 
the right of the father to govern his children, for the parental 
right itself is not ultimate or complete.  All governments that 
assume it to be so, and rest on it as the foundation of their 
authority, are barbaric or despotic, and, therefore , without any 
legitimate authority.  The right to govern rests on ownership or 
dominion.  Where there is no proprietorship, there is no dominion; 
and where there is no dominion, there is no right to govern.  
Only he who is sovereign proprietor is sovereign lord.

Property, ownership, dominion rests on creation.  The maker has 
the right to the thing made.  He, so far as he is sole creator, 
is sole proprietor, and may do what he will with it.  God is 
sovereign lord and proprietor of the universe because He is its 
sole creator.  He
40
                  hath the absolute dominion, because He is 
absolute maker.  He has made it, He owns it; and one may do what 
he will with his own.  His dominion is absolute, because He is 
absolute creator, and He rightly governs as absolute and 
universal lord; yet is He no despot, because He exercises only 
His sovereign right, and His own essential wisdom, goodness, 
justness, rectitude, and immutability, are the highest of all 
conceivable guaranties that His exercise of His power will always 
be right, wise, just, and good.  The despot is a man attempting 
to be God upon earth, and to exercise a usurped power.  Despotism 
is based on, the parental right, and the parental right is 
assumed to be absolute.  Hence, your despotic rulers claim to 
reign, and to be loved and worshipped as gods.  Even the Roman 
emperors, in the fourth and fifth centuries, were addressed as 
divinities; and Theodosius the Great, a Christian , was addressed 
as "Your Eternity," Eternitas vestras--so far did barbarism 
encroach on civilization, even under Christian emperors.

The right of the father over his child is an imperfect right, for 
he is the generator, not the creator of his child.  Generation is 
in the order of second causes, and is simply the development or 
explication of the race.  The
41
                              early Roman law, founded on the 
confusion of generation with creation, gave the father absolute 
authority over the child--the right of life and death, as over 
his servants or slaves; but this was restricted under the Empire, 
and in all Christian nations the authority of the father is 
treated, like all power, as a trust.  The child, like the father 
himself, belongs to the state, and to the state the father is 
answerable for the use he makes of his authority.  The law fixes 
the age of majority, when the child is completely emancipated; 
and even during his nonage, takes him from the father and places 
him under guardians, in case the father is incompetent to fulfil 
or grossly abuses his trust.  This is proper, because society 
contributes to the life of the child, and has a right as well as 
an interest in him.  Society, again, must suffer if the child is 
allowed to grow up a worthless vagabond or a criminal; and has a 
right to intervene, both in behalf of itself and of the child, in 
case his parents neglect to train him up in the nurture and 
admonition of the Lord, or are training him up to be a liar, a 
thief, a drunkard, a murderer, a pest to the community.  How, 
then, base the right of society on the right of the father, 
since, in point of fact, the
42
                             right of society is paramount to the 
right of the parent?

But even waiving this, and granting what is not the fact that the 
authority of the father is absolute, unlimited, it cannot be the 
ground of the right of society to govern.  Assume the parental 
right to be perfect and inseparable from the parental relation, 
it is no right to govern where no such relation exists.  Nothing 
true, real, solid in government can be founded on what Carlyle 
calls a "sham."  The statesman, if worthy of the name, ascertains 
and conforms to the realities, the verities of things; and all 
jurisprudence that accepts legal fictions is imperfect, and even 
censurable.  The presumptions or assumptions of law or politics 
must have a real and solid basis, or they are inadmissible.  How, 
from the right of the father to govern his own child, born from 
his loins, conclude his right to govern one not his child?  Or 
how, from my right to govern my child, conclude the right of 
society to found the state, institute government, and exercise 
political authority over its members?





CHAPTER IV.

ORIGIN OF GOVERNMENT--CONTINUED.


II. Rejecting the patriarchal theory as untenable, and shrinking 
from asserting the divine origin of government, lest they should 
favor theocracy, and place secular society under the control of 
the clergy, and thus disfranchise the laity, modern political 
writers have sought to render government purely human, and 
maintain that its origin is conventional, and that it is founded 
in compact or agreement.  Their theory originated in the 
seventeenth century, and was predominant in the last century and 
the first third of the present.  It has been, and perhaps is yet, 
generally accepted by American politicians and statesmen, at 
least so far as they ever trouble their heads with the question 
at all, which it must be confessed is not far.

The moral theologians of the Church have generally spoken of 
government as a social pact or compact, and explained the 
reciprocal rights and obligations of subjects and rulers by the 
44
general law of contracts; but they have never held that 
government originates in a voluntary agreement between the people 
and their rulers, or between the several individuals composing 
the community.  They have never held that government has only a 
conventional origin or authority.  They have simply meant, by the 
social compact, the mutual relations and reciprocal rights and 
duties of princes and their subjects, as implied in the very 
existence and nature of civil society.  Where there are rights 
and duties on each side, they treat the fact, not as an agreement 
voluntarily entered into, and which creates them, but as a 
compact which binds alike sovereign and subject; and in 
determining whether either side has sinned or not, they inquire 
whether either has broken the terms of the social compact.  They 
were engaged, not with the question whence does government derive 
its authority, but with its nature, and the reciprocal rights and 
duties of governors and the governed.  The compact itself they 
held was not voluntarily formed by the people themselves, either 
individually or collectively, but was imposed by God, either 
immediately, or mediately, through the law of nature.  "Every 
man," says Cicero, "is born in society, and remains there."  They 
held the
45
         same, and maintained that every one born into society 
contracts by that fact certain obligations to society, and 
society certain obligations to him; for under the natural law, 
every one has certain rights, as life, liberty, and the pursuit 
of happiness, and owes certain duties to society for the 
protection and assistance it affords him.

But modern political theorists have abused the phrase borrowed 
from the theologians, and made it cover a political doctrine 
which they would have been the last to accept.  These theorists 
or political speculators have imagined a state of nature 
antecedently to civil society, in which men lived without 
government, law, or manners, out of which they finally came by 
entering into a voluntary agreement with some one of their number 
to be king and to govern them, or with one another to submit to 
the rule of the majority.  Hobbes, the English materialist, is 
among the earliest and most distinguished of the advocates of 
this theory.  He held that men lived, prior to the creation of 
civil society, in a state of nature, in which all were equal, and 
every one had an equal right to every thing, and to take any 
thing on which he could lay his hands and was strong enough to 
hold.  There was no law but the will of the strongest.  Hence, 
the state of nature was a state of con-
46
                                      tinual war.  At length, 
wearied and disgusted, men sighed for peace, and, with one 
accord, said to the tallest, bravest, or ablest among them: Come, 
be our king, our master, our sovereign lord, and govern us; we 
surrender our natural rights and our natural independence to you, 
with no other reserve or condition than that you maintain peace 
among us, keep us from robbing and plundering one another or 
cutting each other's throats.

Locke followed Hobbes, and asserted virtually the same theory, 
but asserted it in the interests of liberty, as Hobbes had 
asserted it in the interests of power.  Rousseau, a citizen of 
Geneva, followed in the next century with his Contrat Social, the 
text-book of the French revolutionists--almost their Bible--and 
put the finishing stroke to the theory.  Hitherto the compact or 
agreement had been assumed to be between the governor and the 
governed; Rousseau supposes it to be between the people 
themselves, or a compact to which the people are the only parties.  
He adopts the theory of a state of nature in which men lived, 
antecedently to their forming themselves into civil society, 
without government or law.  All men in that state were equal, and 
each was independent and sovereign proprietor of himself.  These 
equal, independent, sovereign
47
                              individuals met, or are held to 
have met, in convention, and entered into a compact with 
themselves, each with all, and all with each, that they would 
constitute government, and would each submit to the determination 
and authority of the whole, practically of the fluctuating and 
irresponsible majority.  Civil society, the state, the 
government, originates in this compact, and the government, as 
Mr. Jefferson asserts in the Declaration of American 
Independence, "derives its just powers from the consent of the 
governed."

This theory, as so set forth, or as modified by asserting that 
the individual delegates instead of surrendering his rights to 
civil society, was generally adopted by the American people in 
the last century, and is still the more prevalent theory with 
those among them who happen to have any theory or opinion on the 
subject.  It is the political tradition of the country.  The 
state, as defined by the elder Adams, is held to be a voluntary 
association of individuals.  Individuals create civil society, 
and may uncreate it whenever they judge it advisable.  Prior to 
the Southern Rebellion, nearly every American asserted with 
Lafayette, "the sacred right of insurrection" or revolution, and 
sympathized with insurrectionists, rebels, and revolutionists, 
48
wherever they made their appearance.  Loyalty was held to be the 
correlative of royalty, treason was regarded as a virtue, and 
traitors were honored, feasted, and eulogized as patriots, ardent 
lovers of liberty, and champions of the people.  The fearful 
struggle of the nation against a rebellion which threatened its 
very existence may have changed this.

That there is, or ever was, a state of nature such as the theory 
assumes, may be questioned.  Certainly nothing proves that it is, 
or ever was, a real state.  That there is a law of nature is 
undeniable.  All authorities in philosophy, morals, politics, and 
jurisprudence assert it; the state assumes it as its own 
immediate basis, and the codes of all nations are founded on it; 
universal jurisprudence, the jus qentium of the Romans, embodies 
it, and the courts recognize and administer it.  It is the reason 
and conscience of civil society, and every state acknowledges its 
authority.  But the law of nature is as much in force in civil 
society as out of it.  Civil law does not abrogate or supersede 
natural law, but presupposes it, and supports itself on it as its 
own ground and reason.  As the natural law, which is only natural 
justice and equity dictated by the reason common to all men, 
persists in the civil law, municipal or
49 
                                        international, as its 
informing soul, so does the state of nature persist in the civil 
state, natural society in civil society, which simply develops, 
applies, and protects it.  Man in civil society is not out of 
nature, but is in it--is in his most natural state; for society 
is natural to him, and government is natural to society, and in 
some form inseparable from it.  The state of nature under the 
natural law is not, as a separate state, an actual state, and 
never was; but an abstraction, in which is considered, apart from 
the concrete existence called society, what is derived 
immediately from the natural law.  But as abstractions have no 
existence, out of the mind that forms them, the state of nature 
has no actual existence in the world of reality as a separate 
state.

But suppose with the theory the state of nature to have been a 
real and separate state, in which men at first lived, there is 
great difficulty in understanding how they ever got out of it.  
Can a man divest himself of his nature, or lift himself above it?  
Man is in his nature, and inseparable from it.  If his primitive 
state was his natural state, and if the political state is 
supernatural, preternatural, or subnatural, how passed he alone, 
by his own unaided powers, from the former to the latter?  The 
ancients, 
50
          who had lost the primitive tradition of creation, 
asserted, indeed, the primitive man as springing from the earth, 
and leading a mere animal life, living in eaves or hollow trees, 
and feeding on roots and nuts, without speech, without science, 
art, law, or sense of right and wrong; but prior to the 
prevalence of the Epicurean philosophy, they never pretended, 
that man could come out of that state alone by his own unaided 
efforts.  They ascribed the invention of language, art, and 
science, the institution of civil society, government, and laws, 
to the intervention of the gods.  It remained for the 
Epicureans--who, though unable, like their modern successors, 
the Positivists or Developmentists, to believe in a first cause, 
believed in effects without causes, or that things make or take 
care of themselves--to assert that men could, by their own 
unassisted efforts, or by the simple exercise of reason, come out 
of the primitive state, and institute what in modern times is 
called civilta, civility, or civilization.

The partisans of this theory of the state of nature from which 
men have emerged by the voluntary and deliberate formation of 
civil society, forget that if government is not the sole 
condition, it is one of the essential conditions of progress.  
The only progressive nations are
51
                                 civilized or republican nations.  
Savage and barbarous tribes are unprogressive.  Ages on ages roll 
over them without changing any thing in their state; and Niebuhr 
has well remarked with others, that history records no instance 
of a savage tribe or people having become civilized by its own 
spontaneous or indigenous efforts.  If savage tribes have ever 
become civilized, it has been by influences from abroad, by the 
aid of men already civilized, through conquest, colonies, or 
missionaries; never by their own indigenous efforts, nor even by 
commerce, as is so confidently asserted in this mercantile age.  
Nothing in all history indicates the ability of a savage people 
to pass of itself from the savage state to the civilized.  But 
the primitive man, as described by Horace in his Satires, and 
asserted by Hobbes, Locke, Rousseau, and others, is far below the 
savage.  The lowest, most degraded, and most debased savage tribe 
that has yet been discovered has at least some rude outlines or 
feeble reminiscences of a social state, of government, morals, 
law, and religion, for even in superstition the most gross there 
is a reminiscence of true religion; but the people in the alleged 
state of nature have none.

The advocates of the theory deceive themselves by transporting 
into their imaginary
52
                     state of nature the views, habits, and 
capacities of the civilized man.  It is, perhaps, not difficult 
for men who have been civilized, who have the intelligence, the 
arts, the affections, and the habits of civilization, if deprived 
by some great social convulsion of society, and thrown back on 
the so-called state of nature, or cast away on some uninhabited 
island in the ocean, and cut off from all intercourse with the 
rest of mankind, to reconstruct civil society, and re-establish 
and maintain civil government.  They are civilized men, and bear 
civil society in their own life.  But these are no 
representatives of the primitive man in the alleged state of 
nature.  These primitive men have no experience, no knowledge, no 
conception even of civilized life, or of any state superior to 
that in which they have thus far lived.  How then can they, 
since, on the theory, civil society has no root in nature, but is 
a purely artificial creation, even conceive of civilization, 
much less realize it?

These theorists, as theorists always do, fail to make a complete 
abstraction of the civilized state, and conclude from what they 
feel they could do in case civil society were broken up, what 
men may do and have done in a state of nature.  Men cannot divest 
themselves of
53
              themselves, and, whatever their efforts to do it, 
they think, reason, and act as they are.

Every writer, whatever else he writes, writes himself.  The 
advocates of the theory, to have made their abstraction complete, 
should have presented their primitive man as below the lowest 
known savage, unprogressive, and in himself incapable of 
developing any progressive energy.  Unprogressive, and, without 
foreign assistance, incapable of progress, how is it possible for 
your primitive man to pass, by his own unassisted efforts, from 
the alleged state of nature to that of civilization, of which he 
has no conception, and towards which no innate desire, no 
instinct, no divine inspiration pushes him?

But even if, by some happy inspiration, hardly supposable without 
supernatural intervention repudiated by the theory--if by some 
happy inspiration, a rare individual should so far rise above the 
state of nature as to conceive of civil society and of civil 
government, how could he carry his conception into execution?  
Conception is always easier than its realization, and between the 
design and its execution there is always a weary distance.  The 
poetry of all nations is a wail over unrealized ideals.  It is 
little that even the wisest and most potent statesman can realize 
of what he conceives to
54
                        be necessary for the state: political, 
legislative or judicial reforms, even when loudly demanded, and 
favored by authority, are hard to be effected, and not seldom 
generations come and go without effecting them.  The republics of 
Plato, Sir Thomas More, Campanella, Harrington, as the 
communities of Robert Owen and M. Cabet, remain Utopias, not 
solely because intrinsically absurd, though so in fact, but 
chiefly because they are innovations, have no support in 
experience, and require for their realization the modes of 
thought, habits, manners, character, life, which only their 
introduction and realization can supply.  So to be able to 
execute the design of passing from the supposed state of nature 
to civilization, the reformer would need the intelligence, the 
habits, and characters in the public which are not possible 
without civilization itself.  Some philosophers suppose men have 
invented language, forgetting that it requires language to give 
the ability to invent language.

Men are little moved by mere reasoning, however clear and 
convincing it may be.  They are moved by their affections, 
passions, instincts, and habits.  Routine is more powerful with 
them than logic.  A few are greedy of novelties, and are always 
for trying experiments;
55
                        but the great body of the people of all 
nations have an invincible repugnance to abandon what they know 
for what they know not.  They are, to a great extent, the slaves 
of their own vis inertiae, and will not make the necessary 
exertion to change their existing mode of life, even for a 
better.  Interest itself is powerless before their indolence, 
prejudice, habits, and usages.  Never were philosophers more 
ignorant of human nature than they, so numerous in the last 
century, who imagined that men can be always moved by a sense of 
interest, and that enlightened self-interest, L'interet bien 
entendu, suffices to found and sustain the state.  No reform, no 
change in the constitution of government or of society, whatever 
the advantages it may promise, can be successful, if introduced, 
unless it has its root or germ in the past.  Man is never a 
creator; he can only develop and continue, because he is himself 
a creature, and only a second cause.  The children of Israel, 
when they encountered the privations of the wilderness that lay 
between them and the promised land flowing with milk and honey, 
fainted in spirit, and begged Moses to lead them back to Egypt, 
and permit them to return to slavery.

In the alleged state of nature, as the philosophers describe it, 
there is no germ of civ-
56
                       ilization, and the transition to civil 
society would not be a development, but a complete rupture with 
the past, and an entire new creation.  When it is with the 
greatest difficulty that necessary reforms are introduced in old 
and highly civilized nations and when it can seldom be done at 
all without terrible political and social convulsions, how can we 
suppose men without society, and knowing nothing of it, can 
deliberately, and, as it were, with "malice aforethought," found 
society?  Without government, and destitute alike of habits of 
obedience and habits of command, how can they initiate, 
establish, and sustain government?  To suppose it, would be to 
suppose that men in a state of nature, without culture, without 
science, without any of the arts, even the most simple and 
necessary, are infinitely superior to the men formed under the 
most advanced civilization.  Was Rousseau right in asserting 
civilization as a fall, as a deterioration of the race?

But suppose the state of nature, even suppose that men, by some 
miracle or other, can get out of it and found civil society, the 
origin of government as authority in compact is not yet 
established.  According to the theory, the rights of civil 
society are derived from the rights of the individuals who form 
or enter into
57
              the compact.  But individuals cannot give what they 
have not, and no individual has in himself the right to govern 
another.  By the law of nature all men have equal rights, are 
equals, and equals have no authority one over another.  Nor has 
an individual the sovereign right even to himself, or the right 
to dispose of himself as he pleases.  Man is not God, 
independent, self-existing and self-sufficing.  He is dependent, 
and dependent not only on his Maker, but on his fellow-men, on 
society, and even on nature, or the material world.  That on 
which he depends in the measure in which be depends on it, 
contributes to his existence, to his life, and to his well-being, 
and has, by virtue of its contribution, a right in him and to 
him; and hence it is that nothing is more painful to the proud 
spirit than to receive a favor that lays him under an obligation 
to another.  The right of that on which man depends, and by 
communion with which he lives, limits his own right over himself.

Man does not depend exclusively on society, for it is not his 
only medium of communion with God, and therefore its right to him 
is neither absolute nor unlimited; but still be depends on it, 
lives in it, and cannot live without it.  It has, then, certain 
lights over him, and
58
                     he cannot enter into any compact, league, or 
alliance that society does not authorize, or at least permit.  
These rights of society override his rights to himself, and he 
can neither surrender them nor delegate them.  Other rights, as 
the rights of religion and property, which are held directly from 
God and nature, and which are independent of society, are 
included in what are called the natural rights of man; and these 
rights cannot be surrendered in forming civil society, for they 
are rights of man only before civil society, and therefore not 
his to cede, and because they are precisely the rights that 
government is bound to respect and protect.  The compact, then, 
cannot be formed as pretended, for the only rights individuals 
could delegate or surrender to society to constitute the sum of 
the rights of government are hers already, and those which are 
not hers are those which cannot be delegated or surrendered, and 
in the free and full enjoyment of which, it is the duty, the 
chief end of government to protect each and every individual.

The convention not only is not a fact, but individuals have no 
authority without society, to meet in convention, and enter into 
the alleged compact, because they are not independent, sovereign 
individuals.  But pass over this: sup-
59
                                     pose the convention, suppose 
the compact, it must still be conceded that it binds and can bind 
only those who voluntarily and deliberately enter into it.  This 
is conceded by Mr. Jefferson and the American Congress of l776, 
in the assertion that government derives its "just powers from 
the consent of the governed."  This consent, as the matter is one 
of life and death, must be free, deliberate, formal, explicit, 
not simply an assumed, implied, or constructive consent.  It must 
be given personally, and not by one for another without his 
express authority.

It is usual to infer the consent or the acceptance of the terms 
of the compact from the silence of the individual, and also from 
his continued residence in the country and submission to its 
government.  But residence is no evidence of consent, because it 
may be a matter of necessity.  The individual may be unable to 
emigrate, if he would; and by what right can individuals form an 
agreement to which I must consent or else migrate to some strange 
land?

Can my consent, under such circumstances, even if given, be any 
thing but a forced consent, a consent given under duress, and 
therefore invalid?  Nothing can be inferred from one's silence, 
for he may have many reasons for being 
60
                                       silent besides approval of 
the government.  He may be silent because speech would avail 
nothing; because to protest might be dangerous--cost him his 
liberty, if not his life; because he sees and knows nothing 
better, and is ignorant that he has any choice in the case; or 
because, as very likely is the fact with the majority, he has 
never for moment thought of the matter, or ever had his attention 
called to it, and has no mind on the subject.

But however this may be, there certainly must be excluded from 
the compact or obligation to obey the government created by it 
all the women of a nation, all the children too young to be 
capable of giving their consent, and all who are too ignorant, 
too weak of mind to be able to understand the terms of the 
contract.  These several classes cannot be less than three-fourths 
of the population of any country.  What is to be done with them?  
Leave them without government?  Extend the power of the 
government over them?  By what right?  Government derives its 
just powers from the consent of the governed, and that consent 
they have not given.  Whence does one-fourth of the population 
get its right to govern the other three-fourths?

But what is to be done with the rights of
61
                                          minorities?  Is the 
rule of unanimity to be insisted on in the convention and in the 
government, when it goes into operation?  Unanimity is 
impracticable, for where there are many men there will be 
differences of opinion.  The rule of unanimity gives to each 
individual a veto on the whole proceeding, which was the grand 
defect of the Polish constitution.  Each member of the Polish 
Diet, which included the whole body of the nobility, had an 
absolute veto, and could, alone, arrest the whole action of the 
government.  Will you substitute the rule of the majority, and 
say the majority must govern?  By what right?  It is agreed to in 
the convention.  Unanimously, or only by a majority?  The right 
of the majority to have their will is, on the social compact 
theory, a conventional right, and therefore cannot come into play 
before the convention is completed, or the social compact is 
framed and accepted.  How, in settling the terms of the compact, 
will you proceed?  By majorities?  But suppose a minority 
objects, and demands two-thirds, three-fourths, or four-fifths, 
and votes against the majority rule, which is carried only by a 
simple plurality of votes, will the proceedings of the convention 
bind the dissenting minority?
62
                               What gives to the majority the 
right to govern the minority who dissent from its action?

On the supposition that society has rights not derived from 
individuals, and which are intrusted to the government, there is 
a good reason why the majority should prevail within the 
legitimate sphere of government, because the majority is the best 
representative practicable of society itself; and if the 
constitution secures to minorities and dissenting individuals 
their natural rights and their equal rights as citizens, they 
have no just cause of complaint, for the majority in such case 
has no power to tyrannize over them or to oppress them.  But the 
theory under examination denies that society has any rights 
except such as it derives from individuals who all have equal 
rights.  According to it, society is itself conventional, and 
created by free, independent, equal, sovereign individuals.  
Society is a congress of sovereigns, in which no one has 
authority over another, and no one can be rightfully forced to 
submit to any decree against his will.  In such a congress the 
rule of the majority is manifestly improper, illegitimate, and 
invalid, unless adopted by unanimous consent.

But this is not all.  The individual is always the equal of 
himself, and if the government
63
                               derives its powers from the 
consent of the governed, he governs in the government, and parts 
with none of his original sovereignty.  The government is not his 
master, but his agent, as the principal only delegates, not 
surrenders, his rights and powers to the agent.  He is free at 
any time he pleases to recall the powers he has delegated, to 
give new instructions, or to dismiss him.  The sovereignty of the 
individual survives the compact, and persists through all the 
acts of his agent, the government.  He must, then, be free to 
withdraw from the compact whenever be judges it advisable.  
Secession is perfectly legitimate if government is simply a 
contract between equals.  The disaffected, the criminal, the 
thief the government would send to prison, or the murderer it 
would hang, would be very likely to revoke his consent, and to 
secede from the state.  Any number of individuals large enough to 
count a majority among themselves, indisposed to pay the 
government taxes, or to perform the military service exacted, 
might hold a convention, adopt a secession ordinance, and declare 
themselves a free, independent, sovereign state, and bid defiance 
to the tax-collector and the provost-marshall, and that, too, 
without forfeiting their estates or changing their domicile.  
Would
64
      the government employ military force to coerce them back to 
their allegiance?  By what right?  Government is their agent, 
their creature, and no man owes allegiance to his own agent, or 
creature.

The compact could bind only temporarily, and could at any moment 
be dissolved.  Mr. Jefferson saw this, and very consistently 
maintained that one generation has no power to bind another; and, 
as if this was not enough, he asserted the right of revolution, 
and gave it as his opinion that in every nation a revolution once 
in every generation is desirable, that is, according to his 
reckoning, once every nineteen years.  The doctrine that one 
generation has no power to bind its successor is not only a 
logical conclusion from the theory that governments derive their 
just powers from the consent of the governed, since a generation 
cannot give its consent before it is born, but is very convenient 
for a nation that has contracted a large national debt; yet, 
perhaps, not so convenient to the public creditor, since the new 
generation may take it into its head not to assume or discharge 
the obligations of its predecessor, but to repudiate them.  No 
man, certainly, can contract for any one but himself; and how 
then can the son be bound, without his own personal or
65
                                                       individual 
consent, freely given, by the obligations entered into by his 
father?

The social compact is necessarily limited to the individuals who 
form it, and as necessarily, unless renewed, expires with them.  
It thus creates no state, no political corporation, which 
survives in all its rights and powers, though individuals die.  
The state is on this theory a voluntary association, and in 
principle, except that it is not a secret society, in no respect 
differs from the Carbonari, or the Knights of the Golden Circle.  
When Orsini attempted to execute the sentence of death on the 
Emperor of the French, in obedience to the order of the 
Carbonari, of which the Emperor was a member, he was, if the 
theory of the origin of government in compact be true, no more an 
assassin than was the officer who executed on the gallows the 
rebel spies and incendiaries Beal and Kennedy.

Certain it is that the alleged social compact has in it no social 
or civil element.  It does not and cannot create society.  It can 
give only an aggregation of individuals, and society is not an 
aggregation nor even an organization of individuals.  It is an 
organism, and individuals live in its life as well as it in 
theirs.  There is a real living solidarity, which makes 
individuals members of the social body, and members one
66
                                                        of another.  
There is no society without individuals, and there are no 
individuals without society; but in society there is that which 
is not individual, and is more than all individuals.  The social 
compact is an attempt to substitute for this real living 
solidarity, which gives to society at once unity of life and 
diversity of members, an artificial solidarity, a fictitious 
unity for a real unity, and membership by contract for real 
living membership, a cork leg for that which nature herself gives.  
Real government has its ground in this real living solidarity, 
and represents the social element, which is not individual, but 
above all individuals, as man is above men.  But the theory 
substitutes a simple agency for government, and makes each 
individual its principal.  It is an abuse of language to call 
this agency a government.  It has no one feature or element of 
government.  It has only an artificial unity, based on diversity; 
its authority is only personal, individual, and in no sense a 
public authority, representing a public will, a public right, or 
a public interest.  In no country could government be adopted and 
sustained if men were left to the wisdom or justness of their 
theories, or in the general affairs of life, acted on them.  
Society, and government as representing society, has a real 
existence, life, facul-
67
                      ties, and organs of its own, not derived or 
derivable from individuals.  As well might it be maintained that 
the human body consists in and derives all its life from the 
particles of matter it assimilates from its food, and which are 
constantly escaping as to maintain that society derives its life, 
or government its powers, from individuals.  No mechanical 
aggregation of brute matter can make a living body, if there is 
no living and assimilating principle within; and no aggregation 
of individuals, however closely bound together by pacts or oaths, 
can make society where there is no informing social principle 
that aggregates and assimilates them to a living body, or produce 
that mystic existence called a state or commonwealth.

The origin of government in the Contrat Social supposes the 
nation to be a purely personal affair.  It gives the government 
no territorial status, and clothes it with no territorial rights 
or jurisdiction.  The government that could so originate would be, 
if any thing, a barbaric, not a republican government.  It has 
only the rights conferred on it, surrendered or delegated to it 
by individuals, and therefore, at best, only individual rights.  
Individuals can confer only such rights as they have in the 
supposed state of nature.  In that state there is 
68
neither private nor public domain.  The earth in 
that state is not property, and is open to the first occupant, 
and the occupant can lay no claim to any more than he actually 
occupies.  Whence, then, does government derive its territorial 
jurisdiction, and its right of eminent domain claimed by all 
national governments?  Whence its title to vacant or unoccupied 
lands?  How does any particular government fix its territorial 
boundaries, and obtain the right to prescribe who may occupy, and 
on what conditions the vacant lands within those boundaries?  
Whence does it get its jurisdiction of navigable rivers, lakes, 
bays, and the seaboard within its territorial limits, as 
appertaining to its domain?  Here are rights that it could not 
have derived from individuals, for individuals never possessed 
them in the so-called state of nature.  The concocters of the 
theory evidently overlooked these rights, or considered them of 
no importance.  They seem never to have contemplated the 
existence of territorial states, or the division of mankind into 
nations fixed to the soil.  They seem not to have supposed the 
earth could be appropriated; and, indeed, many of their followers 
pretend that it cannot be, and that the public lands of a nation 
are open lands, and whoso chooses may occupy
69
                                             them, without leave 
asked of the national authority or granted.  The American people 
retain more than one reminiscence of the nomadic and predatory 
habits of their Teutonic or Scythian ancestors before they 
settled on the banks of the Don or the Danube, on the Northern 
Ocean, in Scania, or came in contact with the Graeco-Roman 
civilization.

Yet mankind are divided into nations, and all civilized nations 
are fixed to the soil.  The territory is defined, and is the 
domain of the state, from which all private proprietors hold 
their title-deeds.  Individual proprietors hold under the state, 
and often hold more, than they occupy; but it retains in all 
private estates the eminent domain, and prohibits the alienation 
of land to one who is not a citizen.  It defends its domain, its 
public unoccupied lauds, and the lands owned by private 
individuals, against all foreign powers.  Now whence, if 
government has only the rights ceded it by individuals, does it 
get this domain, and hold the right to treat settlers on even 
its unoccupied lands as trespassers?  In the state of nature the 
territorial rights of individuals, if any they have, are 
restricted to the portion of land they occupy with their rude 
culture, and with their flocks and herds, and in civilized 
nations to what they
70
                     hold from the state, and, therefore, the 
right as held and defended by all nations, and without which the 
nation has no status, no fixed dwelling, and is and can be no 
state, could never have been derived from individuals.  The 
earliest notices of Rome show the city in possession of the 
sacred territory, to which the state and all political power are 
attached.  Whence did Rome become a landholder, and the 
governing people a territorial people?  Whence does any nation 
become a territorial nation and lord of the domain?  Certainly 
never by the cession of individuals, and hence no civilized 
government ever did or could originate in the so-called social 
compact.





71
CHAPTER V.

ORIGIN OF GOVERNMENT-CONTINUED.


III. The tendency of the last century was to individualism; that 
of the present is to socialism.  The theory of Hobbes, Locke, 
Rousseau, and Jefferson, though not formally abandoned, and still 
held by many, has latterly been much modified, if not wholly 
transformed.  Sovereignty, it is now maintained, is inherent in 
the people; not individually, indeed, but collectively, or the 
people as society.  The constitution is held not to be simply a 
compact or agreement entered into by the people as individuals 
creating civil society and government, but a law ordained by the 
sovereign people, prescribing the constitution of the state and 
defining its rights and powers.

This transformation, which is rather going on than completed, is, 
under one aspect at least, a progress, or rather a return to the 
sounder principles of antiquity.  Under it government ceases to 
be a mere agency, which must obtain 
72
                                    the assassin's consent to be 
hung before it can rightfully hang him, and becomes authority, 
which is one and imperative.  The people taken collectively are 
society, and society is a living organism, not a mere aggregation 
of individuals.  It does not, of course, exist without 
individuals, but it is something more than individuals, and has 
rights not derived from them, and which are paramount to theirs.  
There is more truth, and truth of a higher order, in this than in 
the theory of the social compact.  Individuals, to a certain 
extent, derive their life from God through society, and so far 
they depend on her, and they are hers; she owns them, and has the 
right to do as she will with them.  On this theory the state 
emanates from society, and is supreme.  It coincides with the 
ancient Greek and Roman theory, as expressed by Cicero, already 
cited.  Man is born in society and remains there, and it may be 
regarded as the source of ancient Greek and Roman patriotism, 
which still commands the admiration of the civilized world.  The 
state with Greece and Rome was a living reality, and loyalty a 
religion.  The Romans held Rome to be a divinity, gave her 
statues and altars, and offered her divine worship.  This was 
superstition, no doubt, but it had in it an ele-
73
                                               ment of truth.  To 
every true philosopher there is something divine in the state, 
and truth in all theories.  Society stands nearer to God, and 
participates more immediately of the Divine essence, and the 
state is a more lively image of God than the individual.  It was 
man, the generic and reproductive man, not the isolated 
individual, that was created in the image and likeness of his 
Maker.  "And God created man in his own image; in the image of 
God created he him; male and female created he them."

This theory is usually called the democratic theory, and it 
enlists in its support the instincts, the intelligence, the 
living forces, and active tendencies of the age.  Kings, kaisers, 
and hierarchies are powerless before it, and war against it in 
vain.  The most they can do is to restrain its excesses, or to 
guard against its abuses.  Its advocates, in returning to it, 
sometimes revive in its name the old pagan superstition.  Not a 
few of the European democrats recognize in the earth, in heaven, 
or in hell, no power superior to the people, and say not only
people-king but people-God.  They say absolutely, without any 
qualification, the voice of the people is the voice of God, and 
make their will the supreme law, not only in politics, but in 
religion, philosophy, morals, science, and the
74
                                               arts.  The people 
not only found the state, but also the church.  They inspire or 
reveal the truth, ordain or prohibit worships, judge of 
doctrines, and decide cases of conscience.  Mazzini said , when 
at the bead of the Roman Republic in 1848, the question of 
religion must be remitted to the judgment of the people.  Yet 
this theory is the dominant theory of the age, and is in all 
civilized nations advancing with apparently irresistible force.

But this theory has its difficulties.  Who are the collective 
people that have the rights of society, or, who are the sovereign 
people?  The word people is vague, and in itself determines 
nothing.  It may include a larger or a smaller number; it may 
mean the political people, or it may mean simply population; it 
may mean peasants, artisans, shopkeepers, traders, merchants, as 
distinguished from the nobility; hired laborers or workmen as 
distinguished from their employer, or slaves as distinguished 
from their master or owner.  In which of these senses is the word 
to be taken when it is said, "The people are sovereign?"  The 
people are the population or inhabitants of one and the same 
country.  That is something.  But who or what determines the 
country?  Is the country the whole territory of the globe?  That 
will
75
     not be said, especially since the dispersion of mankind and 
their division into separate nations.  Is the territory 
indefinite or undefined?  Then indefinite or undefined are its 
inhabitants, or the people invested with the rights of society.  
Is it defined and its boundaries fixed?  Who has done it?  The 
people.  But who are the people?  We are as wise as we were at 
starting.  The logicians say that the definition of idem per 
idem, or the same by the same, is simply no definition at all.

The people are the nation, undoubtedly, if you mean by the people 
the sovereign people.  But who are the people constituting the 
nation?  The sovereign people?  This is only to revolve in a 
vicious circle.  The nation is the tribe or the people living 
under the same regimen, and born of the same ancestor, or sprung 
from the same ancestor or progenitor.  But where find a nation in 
this the primitive sense of the word?  Migration, conquest, and 
intermarriage, have so broken up and intermingled the primitive 
races, that it is more than doubtful if a single nation, tribe, 
or family of unmixed blood now exists on the face of the earth.  
A Frenchman, Italian, Spaniard, German, or Englishman, may have 
the blood of a hundred different races coursing in his veins.  
The nation is the people
76
                         inhabiting the same country, and united 
under one and the same government, it is further answered.  The 
nation, then, is not purely personal, but also territorial.  
Then, again, the question comes up, who or what determines the 
territory?  The government?  But not before it is constituted, 
and it cannot be constituted till its territorial limits are 
determined.  The tribe doubtless occupies territory, but is not 
fixed to it, and derives no jurisdiction from it, and therefore 
is not territorial.  But a nation, in the modern or civilized 
sense, is fixed to the territory, and derives from it its 
jurisdiction, or sovereignty; and, therefore, till the territory 
is determined, the nation is not and cannot be determined.

The question is not an idle question.  It is one of great 
practical importance; for, till it is settled, we can neither 
determine who are the sovereign people, nor who are united under 
one and the same government.  Laws have no extra-territorial 
force, and the officer who should attempt to enforce the national 
laws beyond the national territory would be a trespasser.  If the 
limits are undetermined, the government is not territorial, and 
can claim as within its jurisdiction only those who choose to 
acknowledge its authority.  The importance of the question has
77
been recently brought home to the American people by the 
secession of eleven or more States from the Union.  Were these 
States a part of the American nation, or were they not?  Was the 
war which followed secession, and which cost so many lives and so 
much treasure, a civil war or a foreign war?  Were the 
secessionists traitors and rebels to their sovereign, or were 
they patriots fighting for the liberty and independence of their 
country and the right of self-government?  All on both sides 
agreed that the nation is sovereign; the dispute was as to the 
existence of the nation itself, and the extent of its 
jurisdiction.  Doubtless, when a nation has a generally 
recognized existence as an historical fact, most of the 
difficulties in determining who are the sovereign people can be 
got over; but the question here concerns the institution of 
government, and determining who constitute society and have the 
right to meet in person, or by their delegates in convention, 
to institute it.  This question, so important, and at times so 
difficult, the theory of the origin of government in the people 
collectively, or the nation, does not solve, or furnish any means 
of solving.

But suppose this difficulty surmounted there is still another, 
and a very grave one, to over-
78
                             come.  The theory assumes that the 
people collectively, "in their own native right and might," are 
sovereign.  According to it the people are ultimate, and free to 
do whatever they please.  This sacrifices individual freedom.  
The origin of government in a compact entered into by 
individuals, each with all and all with each, sacrificed the 
rights of society, and assumed each individual to be in himself 
an independent sovereignty.  If logically carried out, there 
could be no such crime as treason, there could be no state, and 
no public authority.  This new theory transfers to society the 
sovereignty which that asserted for the individual, and asserts 
social despotism, or the absolutism of the state.  It asserts 
with sufficient energy public authority, or the right of the 
people to govern; but it leaves no space for individual rights, 
which society must recognize, respect, and protect.  This was the 
grand defect of the ancient Graeco-Roman civilization.  The 
historian explores in vain the records of the old Greek and Roman 
republics for any recognition of the rights of individuals not 
held as privileges or concessions from the state.  Society 
recognized no limit to her authority, and the state claimed over 
individuals all the authority of the patriarch over his 
household,
79
           the chief over his tribe, or the absolute monarch over 
his subjects.  The direct and indirect influence of the body of 
freemen admitted to a voice in public affairs, in determining the 
resolutions and action of the state, no doubt tempered in 
practice to some extent the authority of the state, and prevented 
acts of gross oppression; but in theory the state was absolute, 
and the people individually were placed at the mercy of the 
people collectively, or, rather, the majority of the collective 
people.

Under ancient republicanism, there were rights of the state and 
rights of the citizen, but no rights of man, held independently 
of society, and not derived from God through the state.  The 
recognition of these rights by modern society is due to 
Christianity: some say to the barbarians, who overthrew the Roman 
empire; but this last opinion is not well founded.  The barbarian 
chiefs and nobles had no doubt a lively sense of personal freedom 
and independence, but for themselves only.  They had no 
conception of personal freedom as a general or universal right, 
and men never obtain universal principles by generalizing 
particulars.  They may give a general truth a particular 
application, but not a particular truth--understood to be a 
particular truth--a general or universal
80
                                         application.  They are 
too good logicians for that.  The barbarian individual freedom 
and personal independence was never generalized into the doctrine 
of the rights of man, any more than the freedom of the master has 
been generalized into the right of his slaves to be free.  The 
doctrine of individual freedom before the state is due to the 
Christian religion, which asserts the dignity and worth of every 
human soul, the accountability to God of each man for himself, 
and lays it down as law for every one that God is to be obeyed 
rather than men.  The church practically denied the absolutism of 
the state, and asserted for every man rights not held from the 
state, in converting the empire to Christianity, in defiance of 
the state authority, and the imperial edicts punishing with death 
the profession of the Christian faith.  In this she practically, 
as well as theoretically, overthrew state absolutism, and infused 
into modern society the doctrine that every individual, even the 
lowest and meanest, has rights which the state neither confers 
nor can abrogate; and it will only be by extinguishing in modern 
society the Christian faith, and obliterating all traces of 
Christian civilization, that state absolutism can be revived with 
more than a partial and temporary success.

81
The doctrine of individual liberty may be abused, and so 
explained as to deny the rights of society, and to become pure 
individualism; but no political system that runs to the opposite 
extreme, and absorbs the individual in the state, stands the 
least chance of any general or permanent success till 
Christianity is extinguished.  Yet the assertion of principles 
which logically imply state absolutism is not entirely harmless, 
even in Christian countries.  Error is never harmless, and only 
truth can give a solid foundation on which to build.  
Individualism and socialism are each opposed to the other, and 
each has only a partial truth.  The state founded on either 
cannot stand, and society will only alternate between the two 
extremes.  To-day it is torn by a revolution in favor of 
socialism; to-morrow it will be torn by another in favor of 
individualism, and without effecting any real progress by either 
revolution.  Real progress can be secured only by recognizing and 
building on the truth, not as it exists in our opinions or in our 
theories, but as it exists in the world of reality, and 
independent of our opinions.

Now, social despotism or state absolutism is not based on truth 
or reality.  Society has certain rights over individuals, for she 
is a
82
     medium of their communion with God, or through which they 
derive life from God, the primal source of all life; but she is 
not the only medium of man's life.  Man, as was said in the 
beginning, lives by communion with God, and he communes with God 
in the creative act and the Incarnation, through his kind, and, 
through nature.  This threefold communion gives rise to three 
institutions--religion or the church, society or the state, and 
property.  The life that man derives from God through religion 
and property, is not derived from him through society, and 
consequently so much of his life be holds independently of 
society; and this constitutes his rights as a man as 
distinguished from his rights as a citizen.  In relation to 
society, as not held from God through her, these are termed his 
natural rights, which, she must hold inviolable, and government 
protect for every one, whatever his complexion or his social 
position.  These rights--the rights of conscience and the rights 
of property, with all their necessary implications--are 
limitations of the rights of society, and the individual has the 
right to plead them against the state.  Society does not confer 
them, and it cannot take them away, for they are at least as 
sacred and as fundamental as her own.

83
But even this limitation of popular sovereignty is not all.  The 
people can be sovereign only in the sense in which they exist and 
act.  The people are not God, whatever some theorists may 
pretend--are not independent, self-existent, and self-sufficing.  
They are as dependent collectively as individually, and therefore 
can exist and act only as second cause, never as first cause.  
They can, then, even in the limited sphere of their sovereignty, 
be sovereign only in a secondary sense, never absolute sovereign 
in their own independent right.  They are sovereign only to the 
extent to which they impart life to the individual members of 
society, and only in the sense in which she imparts it, or is its 
cause.  She is not its first cause or creator, and is the medial 
cause or medium through which they derive it from God, not its 
efficient cause or primary source.  Society derives her own life 
from God, and exists and acts only as dependent on him.  Then she 
is sovereign over individuals only as dependent on God.  Her 
dominion is then not original and absolute, but secondary and 
derivative.

This third theory does not err in assuming that the people 
collectively are more than the people individually, or in denying 
society to be a mere aggregation of individuals with no life, 
84
                                                              and 
no rights but what it derives from them; nor even in asserting 
that the people in the sense of society are sovereign, but in 
asserting that they are sovereign in their own native or 
underived right and might.  Society has not in herself the 
absolute right to govern, because she has not the absolute 
dominion either of herself or her members.  God gave to man 
dominion over the irrational creation, for he made irrational 
creatures for man; but he never gave him either individually or 
collectively the dominion over the rational creation.  The theory 
that the people are absolutely sovereign in their own independent 
right and might, as some zealous democrats explain it, asserts 
the fundamental principle of despotism, and all despotism is 
false, for it identifies the creature with the Creator.  No 
creature is creator, or has the rights of creator, and 
consequently no one in his own right is or can be sovereign.  
This third theory, therefore, is untenable.

IV. A still more recent class of philosophers, if philosophers 
they may be called, reject the origin of government in the people 
individually or collectively.  Satisfied that it has never been 
instituted by a voluntary and deliberate act of the people, and 
confounding government as a
85
                            fact with government as authority, 
maintain that government is a spontaneous development of nature.  
Nature develops it as the liver secretes bile, as the bee 
constructs her cell, or the beaver builds his dam.  Nature, 
working by her own laws and inherent energy, develops society, 
and society develops government.  That is all the secret.  
Questions as to the origin of government or its rights, beyond 
the simple positive fact, belong to the theological or 
metaphysical stage of the development of nature, but are left 
behind when the race has passed beyond that stage, and has 
reached the epoch of positive science, in which all, except the 
positive fact, is held to be unreal and non-existent.  
Government, like every thing else in the universe, is simply a 
positive development of nature.  Science explains the laws and 
conditions of the development, but disdains to ask for its origin 
or ground in any order that transcends the changes of the world 
of space and time.

These philosophers profess to eschew all theory, and yet they 
only oppose theory to theory.  The assertion that reality for the 
human mind is restricted to the positive facts of the sensible 
order, is purely theoretic, and is any thing but a positive fact.  
Principles are as really objects of science as facts, and it is 
only
86
     in the light of principles that facts themselves are 
intelligible.  If the human mind had no science of reality that 
transcends the sensible order, or the positive fact, it could 
have no science at all.  As things exist only in their principles 
or causes, so can they be known only in their principles and 
causes; for things can be known only as they are, or as they 
really exist.  The science that pretends to deduce principles 
from particular facts, or to rise from the fact by way of 
reasoning to an order that transcends facts, and in which facts 
have their origin, is undoubtedly chimerical, and as against that 
the positivists are unquestionably right.  But to maintain that 
man has no intelligence of any thing beyond the fact, no 
intuition or intellectual apprehension of its principle or cause, 
is equally chimerical.  The human mind cannot have all science, 
but it has real science as far as it goes, and real science is 
the knowledge of things as they are, not as they are not.  
Sensible facts are not intelligible by themselves, because they 
do not exist by themselves; and if the human mind could not 
penetrate beyond the individual fact, beyond the mimetic to the 
methexic, or transcendental principle, copied or imitated by the 
individual fact, it could never know the fact itself.  The error 
of modern
87
          philosophers, or philosopherlings, is in supposing the 
principle is deduced or inferred from the fact, and in denying 
that the human mind has direct and immediate intuition of it.

Something that transcends the sensible order there must be, or 
there could be no development; and if we had no science of it, we 
could never assert that development is development, or 
scientifically explain the laws and conditions of development.  
Development is explication, and supposes a germ which precedes 
it, and is not itself a development; and development, however far 
it may be carried, can never do more than realize the 
possibilities of the germ.  Development is not creation, and 
cannot supply its own germ.  That at least must be given by the 
Creator, for from nothing nothing can be developed.  If authority 
has not its germ in nature, it cannot be developed from nature 
spontaneously or otherwise.  All government has a governing will; 
and without a will that commands, there is no government; and 
nature has in her spontaneous developments no will, for she has 
no personality.  Reason itself, as distinguished from will, only 
presents the end and the means, but does not govern; it 
prescribes a rule, but cannot ordain a law.  An imperative will, 
the will of a superior who has the right to
88
                                            command what reason 
dictates or approves, is essential to government; and that will 
is not developed from nature, because it has no germ in nature.  
So something above and beyond nature must be asserted, or 
government itself cannot be asserted, even as a development.  
Nature is no more self-sufficing than are the people, or than is 
the individual man.

No doubt there is a natural law, which is law in the proper sense 
of the word law; but this is a positive law under which nature is 
placed by a sovereign above herself, and is never to be 
confounded with those laws of nature so-called, according to 
which she is productive as second cause, or produces her effects, 
which are not properly laws at all.  Fire burns, water flows, 
rain falls, birds fly, fishes swim, food nourishes, poisons kill, 
one substance has a chemical affinity for another, the needle 
points to the pole, by a natural law, it is said; that is, the 
effects are produced by an inherent and uniform natural force.  
Laws in this sense are simply physical forces, and are nature 
herself.  The natural law, in an ethical sense, is not a physical 
law, is not a natural force, but a law impose by the Creator on 
all moral creatures, that is, all creatures endowed with reason 
and free-will, and is called natural because promul-
89
                                                   gated in 
natural reason, or the reason common and essential to all moral 
creatures.  This is the moral law.  It is what the French call le 
droit naturell, natural right, and, as the theologians teach us, 
is the transcript of the eternal law, the eternal will or reason 
of God.  It is the foundation of all law, and all acts of a state 
that contravene it are, as St. Augustine maintains, violences 
rather than laws.  The moral law is no development of nature, for 
it is above nature, and is imposed on nature.  The only 
development there is about it is in our understanding of it.

There is, of course, development in nature, for nature considered 
as creation has been created in germ, and is completed only in 
successive developments.  Hence the origin of space and time.  
There would have been no space if there had been no external 
creation, and no time if the creation had been completed 
externally at once, as it was in relation to the Creator.  Ideal 
space is simply the ability of God to externize his creative act, 
and actual space is the relation of coexistence in the things 
created; ideal time is the ability of God to create existences 
with the capacity of being completed by successive developments, 
and actual time is the relation of these in the order of 
90
succession, and when the existence is completed or consummated 
development ceases, and time is no more.  In relation to himself 
the Creator's works are complete from the first, and hence with 
him there is no time, for there is no succession.  But in 
relation to itself creation is incomplete, and there is room for 
development, which may be continued till the whole possibility of 
creation is actualized.  Here is the foundation of what is true 
in the modern doctrine of progress.  Man is progressive, because 
the possibilities of his nature are successively unfolded and 
actualized.

Development is a fact, and its laws and conditions may be 
scientifically ascertained and defined.  All generation is 
development, as is all growth, physical, moral, or intellectual.  
But everything is developed in its own order, and after its kind.  
The Darwinian theory of the development of species is not 
sustained by science. The development starts from the germ, and	
in the germ is given the law or principle of the development.  
>From the acorn is developed the oak, never the pine or the 
linden.  Every kind generates its kind, never another.  But no 
development is, strictly speaking, spontaneous, or the result 
alone of the inherent energy or force of the germ developed.
91
There is not only a solidarity of race, but in some sense of all 
races, or species; all created things are bound to their Creator, 
and to one another.  One and the same law or principle of life 
pervades all creation, binding the universe together in a unity 
that copies or imitates the unity of the Creator.  No creature is 
isolated from the rest, or absolutely independent of others.  All 
are parts of one stupendous whole, and each depends on the whole, 
and the whole on each, and each on each.  All creatures are 
members of one body, and members one of another.  The germ of the 
oak is in the acorn, but the acorn left to itself alone can never 
grow into the oak, any more than a body at rest can place itself 
in motion.  Lay the acorn away in your closet, where it is 
absolutely deprived of air, heat, and moisture, and in vain will 
you watch for its germination.  Germinate it cannot without some 
external influence, or communion, so to speak, with the elements 
from which it derives its sustenance and support.

There can be no absolutely spontaneous development.  All things 
are doubtless active, for nothing exists except in so far as it 
is an active force of some sort; but only God himself alone 
suffices for his own activity.  All created things are dependent, 
have not their being 
92
                     in themselves, and are real only as they 
participate, through the creative act, of the Divine being.  The 
germ can no more be developed than it could exist without God, 
and no more develop itself than it could create itself.  What is 
called the law of development is in the germ; but that law or 
force can operate only in conjunction with another force or other 
forces.  All development, as all growth, is by accretion or 
assimilation.  The assimilating force is, if you will, in the 
germ, but the matter assimilated comes and must come from abroad.  
Every herdsman knows it, and knows that to rear his stock he must 
supply them with appropriate food; every husbandman knows it, and 
knows that to raise a crop of corn, be must plant the seed in a 
soil duly prepared, and which will supply the gases needed for 
its germination, growth, flowering, boiling, and ripening.  In 
all created things, in all things not complete in themselves, in 
all save God, in whom there is no development possible, for He 
is, as say the schoolmen, most pure act, in whom there is no 
unactualized possibility, the same law holds good.  Development 
is always the resultant of two factors, the one the thing itself, 
the other some external force co-operating with it, exciting 
it, and aiding it to act.
93
Hence the praemotio physica of the Thomists, and the praevenient 
and adjuvant grace of the theologians, without which no one can 
begin the Christian life, and which must needs be supernatural 
when the end is supernatural.  The principle of life in all 
orders is the same, and human activity no more suffices for 
itself in one order than in another.

Here is the reason why the savage tribe never rises to a 
civilized state without communion in some form with a people 
already civilized, and why there is no moral or intellectual 
development and progress without education and instruction, 
consequently without instructors and educators.  Hence the value 
of tradition; and hence, as the first man could not instruct 
himself, Christian theologians, with a deeper philosophy than is 
dreamed of by the sciolists of the age, maintain that God himself 
was man's first teacher, or that he created Adam a full-grown 
man, with all his faculties developed, complete, and in full 
activity.  Hence, too, the heathen mythologies, which always 
contain some elements of truth, however they may distort, 
mutilate, or travesty them, make the gods the first teachers of 
the human race, and ascribe to their instruction even the most 
simple and ordinary arts of every-day life.
94
                                            The gods teach men to 
plough, to plant, to reap, to work in iron, to erect a shelter 
from the storm, and to build a fire to warm them and to cook 
their food.  The common sense, as well as the common traditions 
of mankind, refuses to accept the doctrine that men are developed 
without foreign aid, or progressive without divine assistance.  
Nature of herself can no more develop government than it can 
language.  There can be no language without society, and no 
society without language.  There can be no government without 
society, and no society without government of some sort.

But even if nature could spontaneously develop herself, she could 
never develop an institution that has the right to govern, for 
she has not herself that right.  Nature is not God, has not 
created us, therefore has not the right of property in us.  She 
is not and cannot be our sovereign.  We belong not to her, nor 
does she belong to herself, for she is herself creature, and 
belongs to her Creator.  Not being in herself sovereign, she 
cannot develop the right to govern, nor can she develop 
government as a fact, to say nothing of its right, for 
government, whether we speak of it as fact or as authority, is 
distinct from that which is governed; but natural de-
95
                                                    velopments 
are nature, and indistinguishable from her.  The governor and the 
governed, the restrainer and the restrained, can never as such be 
identical.  Self-government, taken strictly, is a contradiction 
in terms.  When an individual is said to govern himself, he is 
never understood to govern himself in the sense in which be is 
governed.  He by his reason and will governs or restrains his 
appetites and passions.  It is man as spirit governing man as 
flesh, the spiritual mind governing the carnal mind.

Natural developments cannot in all cases be even allowed to take 
their own course without injury to nature herself.  "Follow 
nature" is an unsafe maxim, if it means, leave nature to develop 
herself as she will, and follow thy natural inclinations.  Nature 
is good, but inclinations are frequently bad.  All our appetites 
and passions are given us for good, for a purpose useful and 
necessary to individual and social life, but they become morbid 
and injurious if indulged without restraint.  Each has its 
special object, and naturally seeks it exclusively, and thus 
generates discord and war in the individual, which immediately 
find expression in society, and also in the state, if the state 
be a simple natural development.  The Christian maxim,
96
                                                       Deny 
thyself, is far better than the Epicurean maxim, Enjoy thyself, 
for there is no real enjoyment without self-denial.  There is 
deep philosophy in Christian asceticism, as the Positivists 
themselves are aware, and even insist.  But Christian asceticism 
aims not to destroy nature, as voluptuaries pretend, but to 
regulate, direct, and restrain its abnormal developments for its 
own good.  It forces nature in her developments to submit to a 
law which is not in her, but above her.  The Positivists pretend 
that this asceticism is itself a natural development, but that 
cannot be a natural development which directs, controls, and 
restrains natural development.

The Positivists confound nature at one time with the law of 
nature, and at another the law of nature with nature herself, and 
take what is called the natural law to be a natural development.  
Here is their mistake, as it is the mistake of all who accept 
naturalistic theories.  Society, no doubt, is authorized by the 
law of nature to institute and maintain government.  But the law 
of nature is not a natural development, nor is it in nature, or 
any part of nature.  It is not a natural force which operates in 
nature, and which is the developing principle of nature.  Do they 
say reason is natural, and the law of
97
                                      nature is only reason?  
This is not precisely the fact.  The natural law is law proper, 
and is reason only in the sense that reason includes both 
intellect and will, and nobody can pretend that nature in her 
spontaneous developments acts from intelligence and volition.  
Reason, as the faculty of knowing, is subjective and natural; but 
in the sense in which it is coincident with the natural law, it 
is neither subjective nor natural, but objective and divine, and 
is God affirming himself and promulgating his law to his 
creature, man.  It is, at least, an immediate participation of 
the divine by which He reveals himself and His will to the human 
understanding, and is not natural, but supernatural, in the sense 
that God himself is supernatural.  This is wherefore reason is 
law, and every man is bound to submit or conform to reason.

That legitimate governments are instituted under the natural law 
is frankly conceded, but this is by no means the concession of 
government as a natural development.  The reason and will of 
which the natural law is the expression are the reason and will 
of God.  The natural law is the divine law as much as the 
revealed law itself, and equally obligatory.  It is not a natural 
force developing itself in na-
98
                             ture, like the law of generation, 
for instance, and therefore proceeding from God as first cause, 
but it proceeds from God as final cause, and is, therefore, 
theological, and strictly a moral law, founding moral rights and 
duties.  Of course, all morality and all legitimate government 
rest on this law, or, if you will, originate in it.  But not 
therefore in nature, but in the Author of nature.  The authority 
is not the authority of nature, but of Him who holds nature in 
the hollow of His hand.

V. In the seventeenth century a class of political writers who 
very well understood that no creature, no man, no number of men, 
not even, nature herself, can be inherently sovereign, defended 
the opinion that governments are founded, constituted, and 
clothed with their authority by the direct and express 
appointment of God himself.  They denied that rulers hold their 
power from the nation; that, however oppressive may be their 
rule, that they are justiciable by any human tribunal, or that 
power, except by the direct judgment of God, is amissible.  Their 
doctrine is known in history as the doctrine of "the divine right 
of kings, and passive obedience."  All power, says St. Paul, is 
from God, and the powers that be are ordained of God, and to 
resist them is to resist
99
                         the ordination of God.  They must be 
obeyed for conscience' sake.

It would, perhaps, be rash to say that this doctrine had never 
been broached before the seventeenth century, but it received in 
that century, and chiefly in England, its fullest and most 
systematic developments.  It was patronized by the Anglican 
divines, asserted by James I. of England, and lost the Stuarts 
the crown of three kingdoms.  It crossed the Channel, into 
France, where it found a few hesitating and stammering defenders 
among Catholics, under Louis XIV., but it has never been very 
generally held, though it has had able and zealous supporters.  
In England it was opposed by all the Presbyterians, Puritans, 
Independents, and Republicans, and was forgotten or abandoned by 
the Anglican divines themselves in the Revolution of 1688, that 
expelled James II. and crowned William and Mary.  It was ably 
refuted by the Jesuit Suarez in his reply to a Remonstrance for 
the Divine Right of Kings by the James I.; and a Spanish monk who 
had asserted it in Madrid, under Philip II., was compelled by the 
Inquisition to retract it publicly in the place where he had 
asserted it.  All republicans reject it, and the Church has never 
sanctioned it.  The Sovereign
100
                              Pontiffs have claimed and exercised 
the right to deprive princes of their principality, and to 
absolve their subjects from the oath of fidelity.  Whether the 
Popes rightly claimed and exercised that power is not now the 
question; but their having claimed and exercised it proves that 
the Church does not admit the inamissibility of power and passive 
obedience; for the action of the Pope was judicial, not 
legislative.  The Pope has never claimed the right to depose a 
prince till by his own act he has, under the moral law or the 
constitution of his state, forfeited his power, nor to absolve 
subjects from their allegiance till their oath, according to its 
true intent and meaning, has ceased to bind.  If the Church has 
always asserted with the Apostle there is no power but from 
God--non est potestas nisi a Deo--she has always through her 
doctors maintained that it is a trust to be exercised for the 
public good, and is forfeited when persistently exercised in a 
contrary sense.  St. Augustine, St. Thomas, and Suarez all 
maintain that unjust laws are violences rather than laws, and do 
not oblige, except in charity or prudence, and that the republic 
may change its magistrates, and even its constitution, if it sees
proper to do so.

That God, as universal Creator, is Sovereign
101
                                             Lord and proprietor 
of all created things or existences, visible or invisible, is 
certain; for the maker has the absolute right to the thing made; 
it is his, and he may do with it as he will.  As he is sole 
creator, he alone hath dominion; and as he is absolute creator, 
he has absolute dominion over all the things which he has made.  
The guaranty against oppression is his own essential nature, is 
in the plenitude of his own being, which is the plenitude of 
wisdom and goodness.  He cannot contradict himself, be other than 
he is, or act otherwise than according to his own essential 
nature.  As he is, in his own eternal and immutable essence, 
supreme reason and supreme good, his dominion must always in its 
exercise be supremely good and supremely reasonable, therefore 
supremely just and equitable.  From him certainly is all power; 
he is unquestionably King of kings, and Lord of lords.  By him 
kings reign and magistrates decree just things.  He may, at his 
will, set up or pull down kings, rear or overwhelm empires, 
foster the infant colony, and make desolate the populous city.  
All this is unquestionably true, and a simple dictate of reason 
common to all men.  But in what sense is it true?  Is it true in 
a supernatural sense?  Or is it true only in the sense
102
                                                       that it is 
true that by him we breathe, perform any or all of our natural 
functions, and in him live, and move, and have our being?

Viewed in their first cause, all things are the immediate 
creation of God, and are supernatural, and from the point of view 
of the first cause the Scriptures usually speak, for the great 
purpose and paramount object of the sacred writers, as of 
religion itself, is to make prominent the fact that God is 
universal creator, and supreme governor, and therefore the first 
and final cause of all things.  But God creates second causes, or 
substantial existences, capable themselves of acting and 
producing effects in a secondary sense, and hence he is said to 
be causa causarum, cause of causes.  What is done by these second 
causes or creatures is done eminently by him, for they exist only 
by his creative act, and produce only by virtue of his active 
presence, or effective concurrence.  What he does through them or 
through their agency is done by him, not immediately, but 
mediately, and is said to be done naturally, as what he does 
immediately is said to be done supernaturally.  Natural is what 
God does through second causes, which he creates; supernatural is 
that which he does by himself alone, without their intervention 
or agency.  Sovereignty, or
105
                            the right to govern, is in him, and 
he may at his will delegate it to men either mediately or 
immediately, by a direct and express appointment, or mediately 
through nature.  In the absence of all facts proving its 
delegation direct and express, it must be assumed to be mediate, 
through second causes.  The natural is always to be presumed, and 
the supernatural is to be admitted only on conclusive proof.

The people of Israel had a supernatural vocation, and they 
received their law, embracing their religious and civil 
constitution and their ritual directly from God at the hand of 
Moses, and various individuals from time to time appear to have 
been specially called to be their judges, rulers, or kings.  Saul 
was so called, and so was David. David and his line appear, also, 
to have been called not only to supplant Saul and his line, but 
to have been supernaturally invested with the kingdom forever; 
but it does not appear that the royal power with which David and 
his line were invested was inamissible.  They lost it in the 
Babylonish captivity, and never afterwards recovered it.  The 
Asmonean princes were of another line, and when our Lord came the 
sceptre was in the hands of Herod, an Idumean Or Edomite.  The 
promise made, to David and
104
                           his house is generally held by 
Christian commentators to have received its fulfilment in the 
everlasting spiritual royalty of the Messiah, sprung through Mary 
from David's line.

The Christian Church is supernaturally constituted and 
supernaturally governed, but the persons selected to exercise 
powers supernaturally defined, from the Sovereign Pontiff down to 
the humblest parish priest are selected and inducted into office 
through human agency.  The Gentiles very generally claimed to 
have received their laws from the gods, but it does not appear, 
save in exceptional cases, that they claimed that their princes 
were designated and held their powers by the direct and express 
appointment of the god.  Save in the case of the Jews, and that 
of the Church, there is no evidence that any particular 
government exists or ever has existed by direct or express 
appointment, or otherwise than by the action of the Creator 
through second causes, or what is called his ordinary providence.  
Except David and his line, there is no evidence of the express 
grant by the Divine Sovereign to any individual or family, class 
or caste of the government of any nation or country.  Even those 
Christian princes who professed to reign "by the grace of God," 
never claimed that they received their principalities 
105
                                                      from God 
otherwise than through his ordinary providence, and meant by it 
little more than an acknowledgment of their dependence on him, 
their obligation to use their power according to his law and 
their accountability to him for the use they make of it.

The doctrine is not favorable to human liberty, for it recognizes 
no rights of man in face of civil society.  It consecrates 
tyranny, and makes God the accomplice of the tyrant, if we 
suppose all governments have actually existed by his express 
appointment.  It puts the king in the place of God, and requires 
us to worship in him the immediate representative of the Divine 
Being.  Power is irresponsible and inamissible, and however it 
may be abused, or however corrupt and oppressive may be its 
exercise, there is no human redress.  Resistance to power is 
resistance to God.  There is nothing for the people but passive 
obedience and unreserved submission.  The doctrine, in fact, 
denies all human government, and allows the people no voice in 
the management of their own affairs, and gives no place for human 
activity.  It stands opposed to all republicanism, and makes 
power an hereditary and indefeasible right, not a trust which he 
who holds it may forfeit, and of which he may be deprived if he 
abuses it.





106
CHAPTER VI.

ORIGIN OF GOVERNMENT--CONCLUDED.


VI. The theory which derives the right of government from the 
direct and express appointment of God is sometimes modified so as 
to mean that civil authority is derived from God through the 
spiritual authority.  The patriarch combined in his person both 
authorities, and was in his own household both priest and king, 
and so originally was in his own tribe the chief, and in his 
kingdom the king.  When the two offices became separated is not 
known.  In the time of Abraham they were still united.  
Melchisedech, king of Salem, was both priest and king, and the 
earliest historical records of kings present them as offering 
sacrifices.  Even the Roman emperor was Pontifex Maximus as well 
as Imperator, but that was so not because the two offices were 
held to be inseparable, but because they were both conferred on 
the same person by the republic.  In Egypt, in the time of Moses, 
the royal authority and
107
                        the priestly were separated and held by 
different persons.  Moses, in his legislation for his nation, 
separated them, and instituted a sacerdotal order or caste.  The 
heads of tribes and the heads of families are, under his law, 
princes, but not priests, and the priesthood is conferred on and 
restricted to his own tribe of Levi, and more especially the 
family of his own brother Aaron.

The priestly office by its own nature is superior to the kingly, 
and in all primitive nations with a separate, organized 
priesthood, whether a true priesthood or a corrupt, the priest is 
held to be above the king, elects or establishes the law by which 
is selected the temporal chief, and inducts him into his office, 
as if he received his authority from God through the priesthood.  
The Christian priesthood is not a caste, and is transmitted by 
the election of grace, not as with the Israelites and all 
sacerdotal nations, by natural Generation.  Like Him whose 
priests they are, Christian priests are priests after the order 
of Melchisedech, who was without priestly descent, without father 
or mother of the priestly line.  But in being priests after the 
order of Melchisedech, they are both priests and kings, as 
Melchisedech was, and as was our Lord himself, to whom was given 
by his
108
       Father all power in heaven and in earth.  The Pope, or 
Supreme Pontiff, is the vicar of our Lord on earth, his 
representative--the representative not only of him who is our 
invisible High-Priest, but of him who is King of kings and Lord 
of lords, therefore of both the priestly and the kingly power.  
Consequently, no one can have any mission to govern in the state 
any more than in the church, unless derived from God directly or 
indirectly through the Pope or Supreme Pontiff.  Many theologians 
and canonists in the Middle Ages so held, and a few perhaps hold 
so still.  The bulls and briefs of several Popes, as Gregory VII., 
Innocent Ill., Gregory IX., Innocent IV., and Boniface VIII., 
have the appearance of favoring it.

At one period the greater part of the medieval kingdoms and 
principalities were fiefs of the Holy See, and recognized the 
Holy Father as their suzerain.  The Pope revived the imperial 
diunity in the person of Charlemagne, and none could claim that 
dignity in the Western world unless elected and crowned by him, 
that is, unless elected directly by the Pope or by electors 
designated by him, and acting under his authority.  There can be 
no question that the spiritual is superior to the temporal, and 
that the temporal is bound in the very nature of things
109
                                                        to conform 
to the spiritual, and any law enacted by the civil power in 
contravention of the law of God is null and void from the 
beginning.  This is what Mr. Seward meant by the higher law, a 
law higher even than the Constitution of the United States.  
Supposing this higher law, and supposing that kings and princes 
hold from God through the spiritual society, it is very evident 
that the chief of that society would have the right to deprive 
them, and to absolve their subjects, as on several occasions he 
actually has done.

But this theory has never been a dogma of the Church, nor, to any 
great extent, except for a brief period, maintained by 
theologians or canonists.  The Pope conferred the imperial 
dignity on Charlemagne and his successors, but not the civil 
power, at least out of the Pope's own temporal dominions.  The 
emperor of Germany was at first elected by the Pope, and 
afterwards by hereditary electors designated or accepted by him, 
but the king of the Germans with the full royal authority could 
be elected and enthroned without the papal intervention or 
permission.  The suzerainty of the Holy See over Italy, Naples, 
Aragon, Muscovy, England, and other European states, was by 
virtue of feudal relations, not by virtue of the spiritual au-
110
                                                             thority 
of the Holy See or the vicarship of the Holy Father.  The right 
to govern under feudalism was simply an estate, or property; and 
as the church could acquire and hold property, nothing prevented 
her holding fiefs, or her chief from being suzerain.  The 
expressions in the papal briefs and bulls, taken in connection 
with the special relations existing between the Pope and emperor 
in the Middle Ages, and his relations with other states as their 
feudal sovereign, explained by the controversies concerning 
rights growing out of these relations, will be found to give no 
countenance to the theory in question.

These relations really existed, and they gave the Pope certain 
temporal rights in certain states, even the temporal supremacy, 
as he has still in what is left him of the States of the Church; 
but they were exceptional or accidental relations, not the 
universal and essential relations between the church and the 
state.  The rights that grew out of these relations were real 
rights, sacred and inviolable, but only where and while the 
relations subsisted.  They, for the most part, grew out of the 
feudal system introduced into the Roman empire by its barbarian 
conquerors, and necessarily ceased with the political order in 
which they originated.  Undoubtedly the church consecrated
111
                                                           civil 
rulers, but this did not imply that they received their power or 
right to govern from God through her; but implied that their 
persons were sacred, and that violence to them would be 
sacrilege; that they held the Christian faith, and acknowledged 
themselves bound to protect it, and to govern their subjects 
justly, according to the law of God.

The church, moreover, has always recognized the distinction of 
the two powers, and although the Pope owes to the fact that he is 
chief of the spiritual society, his temporal principality, no 
theologian or canonist of the slightest respectability would 
argue that he derives his rights as temporal sovereign from his 
rights as pontiff.  His rights as pontiff depend on the express 
appointment of God; his rights as temporal prince are derived 
from the same source from which other princes derive their 
rights, and are held by the same tenure.  Hence canonists have 
maintained that the subjects of other states may even engage in 
war with the Pope as prince, without breach of their fidelity to 
him as pontiff or supreme visible head of the church.

The church not only distinguishes between the two powers, but 
recognizes as legitimate, governments that manifestly do not 
derive from God through her.  St. Paul enjoins obedience
112
                                                         to the 
Roman emperors for conscience' sake, and the church teaches that 
infidels and heretics may have legitimate government; and if she 
has ever denied the right of any infidel or heretical prince, it 
has been on the ground that the constitution and laws of his 
principality require him to profess and protect the Catholic 
faith.  She tolerates resistance in a non-Catholic state no more 
than in a Catholic state to the prince; and if she has not 
condemned and cut off from her communion the Catholics who in our 
struggle have joined the Secessionists and fought in their ranks 
against the United States, it is because the prevalence of the 
doctrine of State sovereignty has seemed to leave a reasonable 
doubt whether they were really rebels fighting against their 
legitimate sovereign or not.

No doubt, as the authority of the church is derived immediately 
from God in a supernatural manner, and as she holds that the 
state derives its authority only mediately from him, in a natural 
mode, she asserts the superiority of her authority, and that, in 
case of conflict between the two powers, the civil must yield.  
But this is only saying that supernatural is above natural.  
But--and this is the important point--she does not teach, nor 
permit the faithful to
113
                       hold, that the supernatural abrogates the 
natural, or in any way supersedes it.  Grace, say the 
theologians, supposes nature, gratia supponit naturam.  The 
church in the matter of government accepts the natural, aids it, 
elevates it, and is its firmest support.

VII. St. Augustine, St. Gregory Magnus, St. Thomas, Bellarmin, 
Suarez, and the theologians generally, hold that princes derive 
their power from God through the people, or that the people, 
though not the source, are the medium of all political authority, 
and therefore rulers are accountable for the use they make of 
their power to both God and the people.

This doctrine agrees with the democratic theory in vesting 
sovereignty in the people, instead of the king or the nobility, a 
particular individual, family, class, or caste; and differs from 
it, as democracy is commonly explained, in understanding by the 
people, the people collectively, not individually--the organic 
people, or people fixed to a given territory, not the people as a 
mere population--the people in the republican sense of the word 
nation, not in the barbaric or despotic sense; and in deriving 
the sovereignty from God, from whom is all power, and except from 
whom there is and can be no power, in-
114
                                     stead of asserting it as the 
underived and indefeasible right of the people in their "own 
native right and might."  The people not being God, and being 
only what philosophers call a second cause, they are and can be 
sovereign only in a secondary and relative sense.  It asserts the 
divine origin of power, while democracy asserts its human origin.  
But as, under the law of nature, all men are equal, or have equal 
rights as men, one man has and can have in himself no right to 
govern another; and as man is never absolutely his own, but 
always and everywhere belongs to his Creator, it is clear that no 
government originating in humanity alone can be a legitimate 
government.  Every such government is founded on the assumption 
that man is God, which is a great mistake--is, in fact, the 
fundamental sophism which underlies every error and every sin.

The divine origin of government, in the sense asserted by 
Christian theologians, is never found distinctly set forth in the 
political writings of the ancient Greek and Roman writers.  
Gentile philosophy had lost the tradition of creation, as some 
modern philosophers, in so-called Christian nations, are fast 
losing it, and were as unable to explain the origin of government 
as they were the origin of man himself.

115
Even Plato, the profoundest of all ancient philosophers, and the 
most faithful to the traditionary wisdom of the race, lacks the 
conception of creation, and never gets above that of generation 
and formation.  Things are produced by the Divine Being 
impressing his own ideas, eternal in his own mind, on a 
pre-existing matter, as a seal on wax.  Aristotle teaches 
substantially the same doctrine.  Things eternally exist as 
matter and form, and all the Divine Intelligence does, is to 
unite the form to the matter, and change it, as the schoolmen say, 
from materia informis to materia formata.  Even the Christian 
Platonists and Peripatetics never as philosophers assert creation; 
they assert it, indeed, but as theologians, as a fact of 
revelation, not as a fact of science; and hence it is that their 
theology and their philosophy never thoroughly harmonize, or at 
least are not shown to harmonize throughout.

Speaking generally, the ancient Gentile philosophers were 
pantheists, and represented the universe either as God or as an 
emanation from God.  They had no proper conception of Providence, 
or the action of God in nature through natural agencies, or as 
modern physicists say, natural laws.  If they recognized the 
action of divinity at all, it was a supernatural
116
                                                 or miraculous 
intervention of some god.  They saw no divine intervention in any 
thing naturally explicable, or explicable by natural laws.  
Having no conception of the creative act, they could have none of 
its immanence, or the active and efficacious presence of the 
Creator in all his works, even in the action of second causes 
themselves.  Hence they could not assert the divine origin of 
government, or civil authority, without supposing it 
supernaturally founded, and excluding all human and natural 
agencies from its institution.  Their writings may be studied 
with advantage on the constitution of the state, on the practical 
workings of different forms of government, as well as on the 
practical administration of affairs, but never on the origin of 
the state, and the real ground of its authority.

The doctrine is derived from Christian theology, which teaches 
that there is no power except from God, and enjoins civil 
obedience as a religious duty.  Conscience is accountable to God 
alone, and civil government, if it had only a natural or human 
origin, could not bind it.  Yet Christianity makes the civil law, 
within its legitimate sphere, as obligatory on conscience as the 
divine law itself, and no man is blameless before God who is not 
blameless before the state.  No man performs faithfully his 
religious
117
          duties who neglects his civil duties, and hence, the 
law of the church allows no one to retire from the world and 
enter a religious order, who has duties that bind him or her to 
the family or the state; though it is possible that the law is 
not always strictly observed, and that individuals sometimes 
enter a convent for the sake of getting rid of those duties, or 
the equally important duty of taking care of themselves.  But by 
asserting the divine origin of government, Christianity 
consecrates civil authority, clothes it with a religious 
character, and makes civil disobedience, sedition, insurrection, 
rebellion, revolution, civil turbulence of any sort or degree, 
sins against God as well as crimes against the state.  For the 
same reason she makes usurpation, tyranny, oppression of the 
people by civil rulers, offences against God as well as against 
society, and cognizable by the spiritual authority.

After the establishment of the Christian church, after its public 
recognition, and when conflicting claims arose between the two 
powers--the civil and the ecclesiastical--this doctrine of the 
divine origin of civil government was abused, and turned against 
the church with most disastrous consequences.  While the Roman 
Empire of the West subsisted, and even after its
118
                                                 fall, so long as 
the emperor of the East asserted and practically maintained his 
authority in the Exarchate of Ravenna and the Duchy of Rome, the 
Popes comported themselves, in civil matters, as subjects of the 
Roman emperor, and set forth no claim to temporal independence.  
But when the emperor had lost Rome, and all his possessions in 
Italy, had abandoned them, or been deprived of them by the 
barbarians, and ceased to make any efforts to recover them, the 
Pope was no longer a subject, even in civil matters, of the 
emperor, and owed him no civil allegiance.  He became civilly 
independent of the Roman Empire, and had only spiritual relations 
with it.  To the new powers that sprang up in Europe he appears 
never to have acknowledged any civil subjection, and uniformly 
asserted, in face of them, his civil as well as spiritual 
independence.

This civil independence the successors of Charlemagne, who 
pretended to be the successors of the Roman Emperors of the West, 
and called their empire the Holy Roman Empire, denied, and 
maintained that the Pope owed them civil allegiance, or that, in 
temporals, the emperor was the Pope's superior.  If, said the 
emperor, or his lawyers for him, the civil power is from God, as 
it must be, since non est potestas 
119
                                   nisi a Deo, the state stands 
on the same footing with the church, and the imperial power 
emanates from as high a source as the Pontifical. The 
emperor is then as supreme in temporals as the Pope in 
spirituals, and as the emperor is subject to the pope in 
spirituals, so must the Pope be subject to the emperor in 
temporals.  As at the time when the dispute arose, the temporal 
interests of churchmen were so interwoven with their spiritual 
rights, the pretensions of the emperor amounted practically to 
the subjection in spirituals as well as temporals of the 
ecclesiastical authority to the civil, and absorbed the church in 
the state, the reasoning was denied, and churchmen replied: The 
Pope represents the spiritual order, which is always and 
everywhere supreme over the temporal, since the spiritual order 
is the divine sovereignty itself.  Always and everywhere, then, 
is the Pope independent of the emperor, his superior, and to 
subject him in any thing to the emperor would be as repugnant to 
reason as to subject the soul to the body, the spirit to the 
flesh, heaven to earth, or God to man.

If the universal supremacy claimed for the Pope, rejoined the 
imperialists, be conceded, the state would be absorbed in the 
church, the autonomy of civil society would be destroyed, and
120
civil rulers would have no functions but to do the bidding of the 
clergy.  It would establish a complete theocracy, or, rather, 
clerocracy, of all possible governments the government the most 
odious to mankind, and the most hostile to social progress.  Even 
the Jews could not, or would not, endure it, and prayed God to 
give them a king, that they might be like other nations.

In the heat of the controversy neither party clearly and 
distinctly perceived the true state of the question, and each was 
partly right and partly wrong.  The imperialists wanted room for 
the free activity of civil society, the church wanted to 
establish in that society the supremacy of the moral order, or 
the law of God, without which governments can have no stability, 
and society no real well-being.  The real solution of the 
difficulty was always to be found in the doctrine of the church 
herself, and had been given time and again by her most approved 
theologians.  The Pope, as the visible head of the spiritual 
society, is, no doubt, superior to the emperor, not precisely 
because he represents a superior order, but because the church, 
of which he is the visible chief, is a supernatural institution, 
and holds immediately from God; whereas civil society,
121
represented by the emperor, holds from God only mediately, 
through second causes, or the people.  Yet, though derived from 
God only through the people, civil authority still holds from God, 
and derives its right from Him through another channel than the 
church or spiritual society, and, therefore, has a right, a 
sacredness, which the church herself gives not, and must 
recognize and respect.  This she herself teaches in teaching that 
even infidels, as we have seen, may have legitimate government, 
and since, though she interprets and applies the law of God, both 
natural and revealed, she makes neither.

Nevertheless, the imperialists or the statists insisted on their 
false charge against the Pope, that he labored to found a purely 
theocratic or clerocratic government, and finding themselves 
unable to place the representative of the civil society on the 
same level with the representative of the spiritual, or to 
emancipate the state from the law of God while they conceded the 
divine origin or right of government, they sought to effect its 
independence by asserting for it only a natural or purely human 
origin.  For nearly two centuries the most popular and 
influential writers on government have rejected the divine origin 
and ground of civil authority,
122
                               and excluded God from the state.  
They have refused to look beyond second causes, and have labored 
to derive authority from man alone.  They have not only separated 
the state from the church as an external corporation, but from 
God as its internal lawgiver, and by so doing have deprived the 
state of her sacredness, inviolability, or hold on the conscience, 
scoffed at loyalty as a superstition, and consecrated not civil 
authority, but what is called "the right of insurrection."  Under 
their teaching the age sympathizes not with authority in its 
efforts to sustain itself and protect society, but with those who 
conspire against it--the insurgents, rebels, revolutionists 
seeking its destruction.  The established government that seeks 
to enforce respect for its legitimate authority and compel 
obedience to the laws, is held to be despotic, tyrannical, 
oppressive, and resistance to it to be obedience to God, and a 
wild howl rings through Christendom against the prince that will 
not stand still and permit the conspirators to cut his throat.  
There is hardly a government now in the civilized world that can 
sustain itself for a moment without an armed force sufficient to 
overawe or crush the party or parties in permanent conspiracy 
against it.

This result is not what was aimed at or de-
123
                                          sired, but it is the 
logical or necessary result of the attempt to erect the state on 
atheistical principles.  Unless founded on the divine sovereignty, 
authority can sustain itself only by force, for political atheism 
recognizes no right but might.  No doubt the politicians have 
sought an atheistical, or what is the same thing, a purely human, 
basis for government, in order to secure an open field for human 
freedom and activity, or individual or social progress.  The end 
aimed at has been good, laudable even, but they forgot that 
freedom is possible only with authority that protects it against 
license as well as against despotism, and that there can be no 
progress where there is nothing that is not progressive.  In 
civil society two things are necessary--stability and movement.  
The human is the element of movement, for in it are possibilities 
that can be only successively actualized.  But the element of 
stability can be found only in the divine, in God, in whom there 
is no unactualized possibility, who, therefore, is immovable, 
immutable, and eternal.  The doctrine that derives authority from 
God through the people, recognizes in the state both of these 
elements, and provides alike for stability and progress.

This doctrine is not mere theory; it simply
124
                                            states the real order 
of things.  It is not telling what ought to be, but what is in 
the real order.  It only asserts for civil government the 
relation to God which nature herself holds to him, which the 
entire universe holds to the Creator.  Nothing in man, in nature, 
in the universe, is explicable without the creative act of God, 
for nothing exists without that act.  That God "in the beginning 
created heaven and earth," is the first principle of all science 
as of all existences, in politics no less than in theology.  God 
and creation comprise all that is or exists, and creation, though 
distinguishable from God as the act from the actor, is 
inseparable from him, "for in Him we live and move and have our 
being."  All creatures are joined to him by his creative act, and 
exist only as through that act they participate of his being.  
Through that act he is immanent as first cause in all creatures 
and in every act of every creature.  The creature deriving from 
his creative act can no more continue to exist than it could 
begin to exist without it.  It is as bad philosophy as theology, 
to suppose that God created the universe, endowed it with certain 
laws of development or activity, wound it up, gave it a jog, set 
it agoing, and then left it to go of itself.  It cannot go of 
itself, because it does not exist
125
                                  of itself.  It did not merely 
not begin to exist, but it cannot continue to exist, without the 
creative act.  Old Epicurus was a sorry philosopher, or rather, 
no philosopher at all.  Providence is as necessary as creation, 
or rather, Providence is only continuous creation, the creative 
act not suspended or discontinued, or not passing over from the 
creature and returning to God.

Through the creative act man participates of God, and he can 
continue to exist, act, or live only by participating through it 
of his divine being.  There is, therefore , something of divinity, 
so to speak, in every creature, and therefore it is that God is 
worshipped in his works without idolatry.  But he creates 
substantial existences capable of acting as second causes.  Hence, 
in all living things there is in their life a divine element and 
a natural element; in what is called human life, there are the 
divine and the human, the divine as first and the human as second 
cause, precisely what the doctrine of the great Christian 
theologians assert to be the fact with all legitimate or real 
government.  Government cannot exist without the efficacious 
presence of God any more than man himself, and men might as well 
attempt to build up a world as to attempt to found a state 
without
126
        God.  A government founded on atheistical principles were 
less than a castle in the air.  It would have nothing to rest on, 
would not be even so much as "the baseless fabric of a vision," 
and they who imagine that they really do exclude God from their 
politics deceive themselves; for they accept and use principles 
which, though they know it not, are God.  What they call abstract 
principles, or abstract forms of reason, without which there were 
no logic, are not abstract, but the real, living God himself.  
Hence government, like man himself, participates of the divine 
being, and, derived from God through the people, it at the same 
time participates of human reason and will, thus reconciling 
authority with freedom, and stability with progress.

The people, holding their authority from God, hold it not as an 
inherent right, but as a trust from Him, and are accountable to 
Him for it.  It is not their own.  If it were their own they 
might do with it as they pleased, and no one would have any right 
to call them to an account; but holding it as a trust from God, 
they are under his law, and bound to exercise it as that law 
prescribes.  Civil rulers, holding their authority from God 
through the people, are accountable for it both to Him and to 
them.  If
127
          they abuse it they are justiciable by the people and 
punishable by God himself.

Here is the guaranty against tyranny, oppression, or bad 
government, or what in modern times is called the responsibility 
of power.  At the same time the state is guarantied against 
sedition, insurrection, rebellion, revolution, by the elevation 
of the civic virtues to the rank of religious, virtues, and 
making loyalty a matter of conscience.  Religion is brought to 
the aid of the state, not indeed as a foreign auxiliary, but as 
integral in the political order itself.  Religion sustains the 
state, not because it externally commands us to obey the higher 
powers, or to be submissive to the powers that be, not because it 
trains the people to habits of obedience, and teaches them to be 
resigned and patient under the grossest abuses of power, but 
because it and the state are in the same order, and inseparable, 
though distinct, parts of one and the same whole.  The church and 
the state, as corporations or external governing bodies, are 
indeed separate in their spheres, and the church does not absorb 
the state, nor does the state the church; but both are from God, 
and both work to the same end, and when each is rightly 
understood there is no antithesis or antagonism between them.  
Men serve God in serving the state as
128
                                      directly as in serving the 
church.  He who dies on the battle-field fighting for his country 
ranks with him who dies at the stake for his faith.  Civic 
virtues are themselves religious virtues, or at least virtues 
without which there are no religious virtues, since no man who 
loves not his brother does or can love God.

The guaranties offered the state or authority are ample, because 
it has not only conscience, moral sentiment, interest, habit, and 
the via inertia of the mass, but the whole physical force of the 
nation, at its command.  The individual has, indeed, only moral 
guaranties against the abuse of power by the sovereign people, 
which may no doubt sometimes prove insufficient.  But moral 
guaranties are always better than none, and there are none where 
the people are held to be sovereign in their own native right and 
might, organized or unorganized, inside or outside of the 
constitution, as most modern democratic theorists maintain; 
since, if so, the will of the people, however expressed, is the 
criterion of right and wrong, just and unjust, true and false, is 
infallible and impeccable, and no moral right can ever be pleaded 
against it; they are accountable to nobody, and, let them do what 
they please, they can do no wrong.  This would place the 
individual at the mercy
129
                        of the state, and deprive him of all 
right to complain, however oppressed or cruelly treated.  This 
would establish the absolute despotism of the state, and deny 
every thing like the natural rights of man, or individual and 
personal freedom, as has already been shown.  Now as men do take 
part in government, and as men, either individually or 
collectively, are neither infallible nor impeccable, it is never 
to be expected, under any possible constitution or form of 
government, that authority will always be wisely and justly 
exercised, that wrong will ever be done, and the rights of 
individuals never in any instance be infringed; but with the 
clear understanding that all power is of God, that the political 
sovereignty is vested in the people or the collective body, that 
the civil rulers hold from God through them and are responsible 
to Him through them, and justiciable by them, there is all the 
guaranty against the abuse of power by the, nation, the political 
or organic people, that the nature of the case admits.  The 
nation may, indeed, err or do wrong, but in the way supposed you 
get in the government all the available wisdom and virtue the 
nation has, and more is never, under any form or constitution of 
government, practicable or to be expected,

130
It is a maxim with constitutional statesmen, that "the king 
reigns, not governs."  The people, though sovereign under God, 
are not the government.  The government is in their name and by 
virtue of authority delegated from God through them, but they are 
not it, are not their own ministers.  It is only when the people 
forget this and undertake to be their own ministers and to manage 
their own affairs immediately by themselves instead of selecting 
agents to do it for them, and holding their agents to a strict 
account for their management, that they are likely to abuse their 
power or to sanction injustice.  The nation may be misled or 
deceived for a moment by demagogues, those popular courtiers, but 
as a rule it is disposed to be just and to respect all natural 
rights.  The wrong is done by individuals who assume to speak in 
their name, to wield their power, and to be themselves the state.  
L'etat, c'est moi. I am the state, said Louis XIV. of France,
and while that was conceded the French nation could have in its 
government no more wisdom or virtue than he possessed, or at 
least no more than he could appreciate.  And under his government 
France was made responsible for many deeds that the nation would 
never have sanctioned, if it bad been recognized as the 
deposi-
131
      tary of the national sovereignty, or as the French state, 
and answerable to God for the use it made of political power, or 
the conduct of its government.

But be this as it may, there evidently can be no physical force 
in the nation to coerce the nation itself in case it goes wrong, 
for if the sovereignty vests in the nation, only the nation can 
rightly command or authorize the employment of force, and all 
commissions must run in its name.  Written constitutions alone 
will avail little, for they emanate from the people, who can 
disregard them, if they choose, and alter or revoke them at will.  
The reliance for the wisdom and justice of the state must after 
all be on moral guaranties.  In the very nature of the case there 
are and can be no other.  But these, placed in a clear light, 
with an intelligent and religious people, will seldom be found 
insufficient.  Hence the necessity for the protection, not of 
authority simply or chiefly, but of individual rights and the 
liberty of religion and intelligence in the nation, of the 
general understanding that the nation holds its power to govern 
as a trust from God, and that to God through the people all civil 
rulers are strictly responsible.  Let the mass of the people in 
any nation lapse into the ignorance and barba-
132
                                             rism of atheism, or 
lose themselves in that supreme sophism called pantheism, the 
grand error of ancient as well as of modern gentilism, and 
liberty, social or political, except that wild kind of liberty, 
and perhaps not even that should be excepted, which obtains among 
savages, would be lost and irrecoverable.

But after all, this theory does not meet all the difficulties of 
the case.  It derives sovereignty from God, and thus asserts the 
divine origin of government in the sense that the origin of 
nature is divine; it derives it from God through the people, 
collectively, or as society, and therefore concedes it a natural, 
human, and social element, which distinguishes it from pure 
theocracy.  It, however, does not explain how authority comes 
from God to the people.  The ruler, king, prince, or emperor, 
holds from God through the people, but how do the people 
themselves hold from God?  Mediately or immediately?  If 
mediately, what is the medium?  Surely not the people themselves.  
The people can no more be the medium than the principle of their 
own sovereignty. If immediately, then God governs in them as he 
does in the church, and no man is free to think or act contrary 
to popular opinion, or in any case to question the wisdom or 
justice
133
        of any of the acts of the state, which is arriving at 
state absolutism by another process.  Besides, this would 
theoretically exclude all human or natural activity, all human 
intelligence and free-will from the state, which were to fall 
into either pantheism or atheism.

VIII. The right of government to govern, or political authority, 
is derived by the collective people or society, from God through 
the law of nature.  Rulers hold from God through the people or 
nation, and the people or nation hold from God through the 
natural law.  How nations are founded or constituted, or a 
particular people becomes a sovereign political people, invested 
with the rights of society, will be considered in following 
chapters.  Here it suffices to say that supposing a political 
people or nation, the sovereignty vests in the community, not 
supernaturally, or by an external supernatural appointment, as 
the clergy hold their authority, but by the natural law, or law 
by which God governs the whole moral creation.

They who assert the origin of government in nature are right, so 
far as they derive it from God through the law of nature, and 
are wrong only when they understand by the law of nature the 
physical force or forces of nature, which
134
                                          are not laws in the 
primary and proper sense of the term.  The law of nature is not 
the order or rule of the divine action in nature which is 
rightfully called providence, but is, as has been said, law in 
its proper and primary sense, ordained by the Author of nature, 
as its sovereign and supreme Lawgiver, and binds all of his 
creatures who are endowed with reason and free-will, and is 
called natural, because promulgated through the reason common to 
all men.  Undoubtedly, it was in the first instance, to the first 
man, supernaturally promulgated, as it is republished and 
confirmed by Christianity, as an integral part of the Christian 
code itself.  Man needs even yet instruction in relation to 
matters lying within the range of natural reason, or else secular 
schools, colleges, and universities would be superfluous, and 
manifestly the instructor of the first man could have been only 
the Creator himself.

The knowledge of the natural law has been transmitted from Adam 
to us through two channels--reason, which is in every man, and in 
immediate relation with the Creator, and the traditions of the 
primitive instruction embodied in language and what the Romans 
call jus gentium, or law common to all civilized nations.  Under 
this law. whose prescriptions are promul-
135
                                        gated through reason and 
embodied in universal jurisprudence, nations are providentially 
constituted, and invested with political sovereignty; and as they 
are constituted under this law and hold from God through it, it 
defines their respective rights and powers, their limitation and 
their extent.

The political sovereignty, under the law of nature, attaches to 
the people, not individually, but collectively, as civil or 
political society.  It is vested in the political community or 
nation, not in an individual, or family, or a class, because, 
under the natural law, all men are equal, as they are under the 
Christian law, and one man has, in his own right, no authority 
over another.  The family has in the father a natural chief, but 
political society has no natural chief or chiefs.  The authority 
of the father is domestic, not political, and ceases when his 
children have attained to majority, have married and become heads 
of families themselves, or have ceased to make part of the 
paternal household.  The recognition of the authority of the 
father beyond the limits of his own household, is, if it ever 
occurs, by virtue of the ordinance, the consent, express or 
tacit, of the political society.  There are no natural-born 
political chiefs, and wherever we find men claiming
136
                                                    or 
acknowledged to be such, they are either usurpers, what the 
Greeks called tyrants, or they are made such by the will or 
constitution of the people or the nation.

Both monarchy and aristocracy were, no doubt, historically 
developed from the authority of the patriarchs, and have 
unquestionably been sustained by an equally false development of 
the right of property, especially landed property.  The owner of 
the land, or he who claimed to own it, claimed as an incident of 
his ownership the right to govern it, and consequently to govern 
all who occupied it.  But however valid may be the landlord's 
title to the soil, and it is doubtful if man can own any thing in 
land beyond the usufruct, it can give him under the law of nature 
no political right.  Property, like all natural rights, is 
entitled by the natural law to protection, but not to govern.  
Whether it shall be made a basis of political power or not is a 
question of political prudence, to be determined by the supreme 
political authority.  It was the basis, and almost exclusive 
basis, in the Middle Ages, under feudalism, and is so still in 
most states.  France and the United States are the principal 
exceptions in Christendom.  Property alone, or coupled with 
birth, is made elsewhere in some form a basis of political
137
power, and where made so by the sovereign authority, it is 
legitimate, but not wise nor desirable; for it takes from the 
weak and gives to the strong.  The rich have in their riches 
advantages enough over the poor, without receiving from the state 
any additional advantage.  An aristocracy, in the sense of 
families distinguished by birth, noble and patriotic services, 
wealth, cultivation, refinement, taste, and manners, is desirable 
in every nation, is a nation's ornament, and also its chief 
support, but they need and should receive no political 
recognition.  They should form no privileged class in the state 
or political society.





CHAPTER VII

CONSTITUTION OF GOVERNMENT.


The Constitution is twofold: the constitution of the state or 
nation, and the constitution of the government.  The constitution 
of the government is, or is held to be, the work of the nation 
itself; the constitution of the state, or the people of the 
state, is, in its origin at least, providential, given by God 
himself, operating through historical events or natural causes.  
The one originates in law, the other in historical fact.  The 
nation must exist, and exist as a political community, before it 
can give itself a constitution; and no state, any more than an 
individual, can exist without a constitution of some sort.

The distinction between the providential constitution of the 
people and the constitution of the government, is not always 
made.  The illustrious Count de Maistre, one of the ablest 
political philosophers who wrote in the last century, or the 
first quarter of the present, in his work 
139
                                          on the Generative 
Principle of Political Constitutions, maintains that
constitutions are generated, not made, and excludes all human 
agency from their formation and growth.  Disgusted with French 
Jacobinism, from which he and his kin and country had suffered so 
much, and deeply wedded to monarchy in both church and state, he 
had the temerity to maintain that God creates expressly royal 
families for the government of nations, and that it is idle for a 
nation to expect a good government without a king who has 
descended from one of those divinely created royal families.  It 
was with some such thought, most likely, that a French 
journalist, writing home from the United States, congratulated 
the American people on having a Bonaparte in their army, so that 
when their democracy failed, as in a few years it was sure to do, 
they would have a descendant of a royal house to be their king or 
emperor.  Alas! the Bonaparte has left us, and besides, he was 
not the descendant of a royal house, and was, like the present 
Emperor of the French, a decided parvenu.  Still, the Emperor of 
the French, if only a parvenu, bears himself right imperially 
among sovereigns, and has no peer among any of the descendants of 
the old royal families of Europe 

140
There is a truth, however, in De Maistre's doctrine that 
constitutions are generated, or developed, not created de novo, 
or made all at once.  But nothing is more true than that a nation 
can alter its constitution by its own deliberate and voluntary 
action, and many nations have done so, and sometimes for the 
better, as well as for the worse.  If the constitution once given is 
fixed and unalterable, it must be wholly divine, and contain no 
human element, and the people have and can have no hand in their 
own government--the fundamental objection to the theocratic 
constitution of society.  To assume it is to transfer to civil 
society, founded by the ordinary providence of God, the 
constitution of the church, founded by his gracious or 
supernatural providence, and to maintain that the divine 
sovereignty governs in civil society immediately and 
supernaturally, as in the spiritual society.  But such is not the 
fact.  God governs the nation by the nation itself, through its 
own reason and free-will.  De Maistre is right only as to the 
constitution the nation starts with, and as to the control which 
that constitution necessarily exerts over the constitutional 
changes the nation can successfully introduce.

The disciples of Jean Jacques Rousseau rec-
141
                                          ognize no providential 
constitution, and call the written instrument drawn up by a 
convention of sovereign individuals the constitution, and the 
only constitution, both of the people and the government.  Prior 
to its adoption there is no government, no state, no political 
community or authority.  Antecedently to it the people are an 
inorganic mass, simply individuals, without any political or 
national solidarity.  These individuals, they suppose, come 
together in their own native right and might, organize themselves 
into a political community, give themselves a constitution, and 
draw up and vote rules for their government, as a number of 
individuals might meet in a public hall and resolve themselves 
into a temperance society or a debating club.  This might do very 
well if the state were, like the temperance society or debating 
club, a simple voluntary association, which men are free to join 
or not as they please, and which they are bound to obey no 
farther and no longer than suits their convenience.  But the 
state is a power, a sovereignty; speaks to all within its 
jurisdiction with an imperative voice; commands, and may use 
physical force to compel obedience, when not voluntarily yielded.  
Men are born its subjects, and no one can withdraw from it
142
without its express or tacit permission, unless for causes that 
would justify resistance to its authority.  The right of subjects 
to denationalize or expatriate themselves, except to escape a 
tyranny or an oppression which would forfeit the rights of power 
and warrant forcible resistance to it, does not exist, any more 
than the right of foreigners to become citizens, unless by the 
consent and authorization of the sovereign; for the citizen or 
subject belongs to the state, and is bound to it.

The solidarity of the individuals composing the population of a 
territory or country under one political head is a truth; but 
"the solidarity of peoples," irrespective of the government or 
political authority of their respective countries, so eloquently 
preached a few years since by the Hungarian Kossuth, is not only 
a falsehood, but a falsehood destructive of all government and of 
all political organization.  Kossuth's doctrine supposes the 
people, or the populations of all countries, are, irrespective of 
their governments, bound together in solido, each for all and all 
for each, and therefore not only free, but bound, wherever they 
find a population struggling nominally for liberty against its 
government, to rush with arms in their hands to its assistance--a 
doctrine clearly incompati-
143
                          ble with any recognition of political 
authority or territorial rights.  Peoples or nations commune with 
each other only through the national authorities, and when the 
state proclaims neutrality or non-intervention, all its subjects 
are bound to be neutral, and to abstain from all intervention on 
either side.  There may be, and indeed there is, a solidarity, 
more or less distinctly recognized, of Christian nations, but of 
the populations with and through their governments, not without 
them.  Still more strict is the solidarity of all the individuals 
of one and the same nation.  These are all bound together, all 
for each and each for all.  The individual is born into society 
and under the government, and without the authority of the 
government, which represents all and each, he cannot release 
himself from his obligations.  The state is then by no means a 
voluntary association.  Every one born or adopted into it is 
bound to it, and cannot without its permission withdraw from it, 
unless, as just said, it is manifest that he can have under it no 
protection for his natural rights as a man, more especially for 
his rights of conscience.  This is Vattel's doctrine, and the 
dictate of common sense.

The constitution drawn up, ordained, and established by a nation 
for itself is a law--the 
144
                         organic or fundamental law, if you will, 
but a law, and is and must be the act of the sovereign power.  
That sovereign power must exist before it can act, and it cannot 
exist, if vested in the people or nation, without a constitution, 
or without some sort of political organization of the people or 
nation.  There must, then, be for every state or nation a 
constitution anterior to the constitution which the nation gives 
itself, and from which the one it gives itself derives all its 
vitality and legal force.

Logic and historical facts are here, as elsewhere, coincident, 
for creation and providence are simply the expression of the 
Supreme Logic, the Logos, by whom all things are made.  Nations 
have originated in various ways, but history records no instance 
of a nation existing as an inorganic mass organizing itself into 
a political community.  Every nation, at its first appearance 
above the horizon, is found to have an organization of some sort.  
This is evident from the only ways in which history shows us 
nations originating.  These ways are: 1. The union of families in 
the tribe. 2. The union of tribes in the nation. 3. The migration 
of families, tribes, or nations in search of new settlements. 
4. Colonization, military, agricultural, commercial, industrial, 
religious, or penal. 5. War 
145
                            and conquest. 6. The revolt, 
separation, and independence of provinces. 7. The intermingling 
of the conquerors and conquered, and by amalgamation forming a 
new people.  These are all the ways known to history, and in none 
of these ways does a people, absolutely destitute of all 
organization, constitute itself a state, and institute and carry 
on civil government.

The family, the tribe, the colony are, if incomplete, yet 
incipient states, or inchoate nations, with an organization, 
individuality, and a centre of social life of their own.  The 
families and tribes that migrate in search of new settlements 
carry with them their family and tribal organizations, and 
retain it for a long time.  The Celtic tribes retained it in Gaul 
till broken up by the Roman conquest, under Caesar Augustus; in 
Ireland, till the middle of the seventeenth century; and in 
Scotland, till the middle of the eighteenth.  It subsists still 
in the hordes of Tartary, the Arabs of the Desert, and the 
Berbers or Kabyles of Africa.

Colonies, of whatever description, have been founded, if not by, 
at least under, the authority of the mother country, whose 
political constitution, laws, manners, and customs they carry 
with them.  They receive from the parent state 
146
                                               a political 
organization, which, though subordinate, yet constitutes them 
embryonic states, with a unity, individuality, and centre of 
public life in themselves, and which, when they are detached and 
recognized as independent, render them complete states.  War and 
conquest effect great national changes, but do not, strictly 
speaking, create new states.  They simply extend and consolidate 
the power of the conquering state.

Provinces revolt and become independent states or nations, but 
only when they have previously existed as such, and have retained 
the tradition of their old constitution and independence; or when 
the administration has erected them into real though dependent 
political communities.  A portion of the people of a state not so 
erected or organized, that has in no sense had a distinct 
political existence of its own, has never separated from the 
national body and formed a new and independent nation.  It cannot 
revolt; it may rise up against the government, and either 
revolutionize and take possession of the state, or be put down by 
the government as an insurrection.  The amalgamation of the 
conquering and the conquered forms a new people, and modifies the 
institutions of both, but does not necessarily form a 
147
                                                      new nation 
or political community.  The English of to-day are very different 
from both the Normans and the Saxons, or Dano-Saxons, of the time 
of Richard Coeur de Lion, but they constitute the same state or 
political community.  England is still England.

The Roman empire, conquered by the Northern barbarians, has been 
cut up into several separate and independent nations, but because 
its several provinces had, prior to their conquest by the Roman 
arms, been independent nations or tribes, and more especially 
because the conquerors themselves were divided into several 
distinct nations or confederacies.  If the barbarians had been 
united in a single nation or state, the Roman empire most likely 
would have changed masters, indeed, but have retained its unity 
and its constitution, for the Germanic nations that finally 
seated themselves on its ruins had no wish to destroy its name or 
nationality, for they were themselves more than half Romanized 
before conquering Rome.  But the new nations into which the 
empire has been divided have never been, at any moment, without 
political or governmental organization, continued from the 
constitution of the conquering tribe or nation, modified more or 
less by what was retained from the empire.

148
It is not pretended that the constitutions of states cannot be 
altered, or that every people starts with a constitution fully 
developed, as would seem to be the doctrine of De Maistre.  The 
constitution of the family is rather economical than political, 
and the tribe is far from being a fully developed state.  
Strictly speaking, the state, the modern equivalent for the city 
of the Greeks and Romans, was not fully formed till men began to 
build and live in cities, and became fixed to a national 
territory.  But in the first place, the eldest born of the human 
race, we are told, built a city, and even in cities we find 
traces of the family and tribal organization long after their 
municipal existence--in Athens down to the Macedonian conquest, 
and in Rome down to the establishment of the Empire; and, in the 
second place, the pastoral nations, though they have not 
precisely the city or state organization, yet have a national 
organization, and obey a national authority.  Strictly speaking, 
no pastoral nation has a civil or political constitution, but 
they have what in our modern tongues can be expressed by no other 
term.  The feudal regime, which was in full vigor even in Europe 
from the tenth to the close of the fourteenth century, had 
nothing to do with cities, and really recognized no state
149
                                                          proper; 
yet who hesitates to speak of it as a civil or political system, 
though a very imperfect one?

The civil order, as it now exists, was not fully developed in the 
early ages.  For a long time the national organizations bore 
unmistakable traces of having been developed from the patriarchal, 
and modelled from the family or tribe, as they do still in all 
the non-Christian world.  Religion itself, before the Incarnation, 
bore traces of the same organization.  Even with the Jews, 
religion was transmitted and disused, not as under Christianity 
by conversion, but by natural generation or family adoption.  
With all the Gentile tribes or nations, it was the same.  At 
first the father was both priest and king, an when the two 
offices were separated, the priests formed a distinct and 
hereditary class or caste, rejected by Christianity, which, as we 
have seen, admits priests only after the order of Melchisedech.  
The Jews had the synagogue, and preserved the primitive 
revelation in its purity and integrity; but the Greeks and 
Romans, more fully than any other ancient nations, preserved or 
developed the political order that best conforms to the Christian 
religion; and Christianity, it is worthy of remark, followed in 
the track of the Roman armies, and it gains 
150
                                            a permanent 
establishment only where was planted, or where it is able to 
plant, the Graeco-Roman civilization.  The Graeco-Roman republics 
were hardly less a schoolmaster to bring the world to Christ in 
the civil order, than the Jewish nation was to bring it to Him in 
the spiritual order, or in faith and worship.  In the Christian 
order nothing is by hereditary descent, but every thing is by 
election of grace.  The Christian dispensation is teleological, 
palingenesiac, and the whole order, prior to the Incarnation, was 
initial, genesiac, and continued by natural generation, as it is 
still in all nations and tribes outside of Christendom.  No 
non-Christian people is a civilized people, and, indeed, the 
human race seems not anywhere, prior to the Incarnation, to have 
attained to its majority: and it is, perhaps, because the race 
were not prepared for it, that the Word was not sooner incarnated.  
He came only in the fulness of time, when the world was ready to 
receive him.

The providential constitution is, in fact, that with which the 
nation is born, and is, as long as the nation exists, the real 
living and efficient constitution of the state.  It is the source 
of the vitality of the state, that which controls or governs its 
action, and determines its destiny.  
151
                                     The constitution which a 
nation is said to give itself, is never the constitution of the 
state, but is the law ordained by the state for the government 
instituted under it.  Thomas Paine would admit nothing to be the 
constitution but a written document which he could fold up and 
put in his pocket, or file away in a pigeon-hole.  The Abbe 
Sieyes pronounced politics a science which he had finished, and 
he was ready to turn you out constitutions to order, with no 
other defect than that they had, as Carlyle wittily says, no feet, 
and could not go.  Many in the last century, and some, perhaps, 
in the present, for folly as well as wisdom has her heirs, 
confounded the written instrument with the constitution itself.  
No constitution can be written on paper or engrossed on parchment.  
What the convention may agree upon, draw up, and the people 
ratify by their votes, is no constitution, for it is extrinsic to 
the nation, not inherent and living in it--is, at best, 
legislative instead of constitutive.  The famous Magna Charta 
drawn up by Cardinal Langton, and wrung from John Lackland by the 
English barons at Runnymede, was no constitution of England till 
long after the date of its concession, and even then was no 
constitution of the state, but a set of restrictions on power.  
The constitution is
152
                    the intrinsic or inherent and actual 
constitution of the people or political community itself; that 
which makes the nation what it is, and distinguishes it from 
every other nation, and varies as nations themselves vary from 
one another.

The constitution of the state is not a theory, nor is it drawn up 
and established in accordance with any preconceived theory.  What 
is theoretic in a constitution is unreal.  The constitutions 
conceived by philosophers in their closets are constitutions only 
of Utopia or Dreamland.  This world is not governed by 
abstractions, for abstractions are nullities.  Only the concrete 
is real, and only the real or actual has vitality or force.  The 
French people adopted constitution after constitution of the most 
approved pattern, and amid bonfires, beating of drums, sound of 
trumpets, roar of musketry, and thunder of artillery, swore, no 
doubt, sincerely as well as enthusiastically, to observe them, 
but all to no effect; for they had no authority for the nation, 
no hold on its affections, and formed no element of its life.  
The English are great constitution-mongers--for other nations.  
They fancy that a constitution fashioned after their own will fit 
any nation that can be persuaded, wheedled, or bullied into 
153
trying it on; but, unhappily, all that have tried it on have 
found it only an embarrassment or encumbrance.  The doctor might 
as well attempt to give an individual a new constitution, or the 
constitution of another man, as the statesman to give a nation 
any other constitution than that which it has, and with which it 
is born.

The whole history of Europe, since the fall of the Roman empire, 
proves this thesis.  The barbarian conquest of Rome introduced 
into the nations founded on the site of the empire, a double 
constitution--the barbaric and the civil--the Germanic and the 
Roman in the West, and the Tartaric or Turkish and the 
Graeco-Roman in the East.  The key to all modern history is in 
the mutual struggles of these two constitutions and the interests 
respectively associated with them, which created two societies on 
the same territory, and, for the most part, under the same 
national denomination.  The barbaric was the constitution of the 
conquerors; they had the power, the government, rank, wealth, and 
fashion, were reinforced down to the tenth century by fresh 
hordes of barbarians, and had even brought the external 
ecclesiastical society to a very great extent into harmony with 
itself.  The Pope became a 
154
                           feudal sovereign, and the bishops and 
mitred abbots feudal princes and barons.  Yet, after eight 
hundred years of fierce struggle, the Roman constitution got the 
upper hand, and the barbaric constitution, as far as it could not 
be assimilated to the Roman, was eliminated.  The original Empire 
of the West is now as thoroughly Roman in its constitution, its 
laws, and its civilization, as it ever was under any of its 
Christian emperors before the barbarian conquest.

The same process is going on in the East, though it has not 
advanced so far, having begun there several centuries later, and 
the Graeco-Roman constitution was far feebler there than in the 
West at the epoch of the conquest.  The Germanic tribes that 
conquered the West had long had close relations with the empire, 
had served as its allies, and even in its armies, and were 
partially Romanized.  Most of their chiefs had received a Roman 
culture; and their early conversion to the Christian faith 
facilitated the revival and permanence of the old Roman 
constitution.  In the East it was different.  The conquerors had 
no touch of Roman civilization, and, followers of the Prophet, 
they were animated with an intense hatred, which, after the 
conquest, was changed into a superb contempt,
155
                                              of Christians and 
Romans.  They had their civil constitution in the Koran; and the 
Koran, in its principles, doctrines, and spirit, is exclusive and 
profoundly intolerant.  The Graeco-Roman constitution was always 
much weaker in the East, and had far greater obstacles to 
overcome there than in the West; yet it has survived the shock of 
the conquest.  Throughout the limits of the ancient Empire of the 
East, the barbaric constitution has received and is daily 
receiving rude blows, and, but as reenforced by barbarians lying 
outside of the boundaries of that empire, would be no longer able 
to sustain itself.  The Greek or Christian populations of the 
empire are no longer in danger of being exterminated or absorbed 
by the Mohammedan state or population.  They are the only living 
and progressive people of the Ottoman Empire, and their complete 
success in absorbing or expelling the Turk is only a question of 
time.  They will, in all present probability, reestablish a 
Christian and Roman East in much less time from the fall of 
Constantinople in 1453, than it took the West from the fall of 
Rome in 476 to put an end to the feudal or barbaric constitution 
founded by its Germanic invaders.

Indeed, the Roman constitution, laws, and
156
                                          civilization not only 
gain the mastery in the nations seated within the limits of the 
old Roman Empire, but extend their power through out the whole 
civilized world.  The Graeco-Roman civilization is, in fact, the 
only civilization now recognized, and nations are accounted 
civilized only in proportion as they are Romanized and 
Christianized.  The Roman law, as found in the Institutes, 
Pandects, and Novellae of Justinian, or the Corpus Legis Civilis, 
is the basis of the law and jurisprudence of all Christendom.  
The Graeco-Roman civilization, called not improperly Christian 
civilization, is the only progressive civilization.  The old 
feudal system remains in England little more than an empty name.  
The king is only the first magistrate of the kingdom, and the 
House of Lords is only an hereditary senate.  Austria is hard at 
work in the Roman direction, and finds her chief obstacle to 
success in Hungary, with the Magyars whose feudalism retains 
almost the full vigor of the Middle Ages.  Russia is moving in 
the same direction; and Prussia and the smaller Germanic states 
obey the same impulse.  Indeed, Rome has survived the 
conquest--has conquered her conquerors, and now invades every 
region from which they came.  The Roman Empire may be said to be 
acknowledged
157
             and obeyed in lands lying far beyond the farthest 
limits reached by the Roman eagles, and to be more truly the 
mistress of the world than under Augustus, Trajan, or the 
Antonines.  Nothing can stand before the Christian and Romanized 
nations, and all pagandom and Mohammedom combined are too weak to 
resist their onward march.

All modern European revolutions result only in reviving the Roman 
Empire, whatever the motives, interests, passions, or theories 
that initiate them.  The French Revolution of the last century 
and that of the present prove it.  France, let people say what 
they will, stands at the head of the European civilized world, 
and displays en grand all its good and all its bad tendencies.  
When she moves, Europe moves; when she has a vertigo, all 
European nations are dizzy; when she recovers her health, her 
equilibrium, and good sense, others become sedate, steady, and 
reasonable.  She is the head, nay, rather, the heart of 
Christendom--the head is at Rome--through which circulates the 
pure and impure blood of the nations.  It is in vain Great 
Britain, Germany, or Russia disputes with her the hegemony of 
European civilization.  They are forced to yield to her at last, 
to be content to revolve around her as
158
                                       the centre of the 
political system that masters them.  The reason is, France is 
more completely and sincerely Roman than any other nation.  The 
revolutions that have shaken the world have resulted in 
eliminating the barbaric elements she had retained, and clearing 
away all obstacles to the complete triumph of Imperial Rome.  
Napoleon III. is for France what Augustus was for Rome.  The 
revolutions in Spain and Italy have only swept away the relics of 
the barbaric constitution, and aided the revival of Roman 
imperialism.  In no country do the revolutionists succeed in 
establishing their own theories; Caesar remains master of the 
field.  Even in the United States, a revolution undertaken in 
favor of the barbaric system has resulted in the destruction of 
what remained of that system--in sweeping away the last relics of 
disintegrating feudalism, and in the complete establishment of 
the Graeco-Roman system, with important improvements, in the New 
World.

The Roman system is republican, in the broad sense of the term, 
because under it power is never an estate, never the private 
for the public good.  As it existed under the Caesars, and is 
revived in modern times, whether under the
159
                                           imperial or the 
democratic form, it, no doubt, tends to centralism, to the 
concentration of all the powers and forces of the state in one 
central government, from which all local authorities and 
institutions emanate.  Wise men oppose it as affording no 
guaranties to individual liberty against the abuses of power.  
This it may not do, but the remedy is not in feudalism.  The 
feudal lord holds his authority as an estate, and has over the 
people under him all the power of Caesar and all the rights of 
the proprietor.  He, indeed, has a guaranty against his 
liege-lord, sometimes a more effective guaranty than his 
liege-lord has against him; but against his centralized power his 
vassals and serfs have only the guaranty that a slave has against 
his owner.

Feudalism is alike hostile to the freedom of public authority and 
of the people.  It is essentially a disintegrating element in the 
nation.  It breaks the unity and individuality of the state, 
embarrasses the sovereign, and guards against the abuse of public 
authority by overpowering and suppressing it.  Every feudal lord 
is a more thorough despot in his own domain than Caesar ever was 
or could be in the empire; and the monarch, even if strong enough, 
is yet not competent to intervene between him and his 
160
                                                      people, any 
more than the General government in the United States was to 
intervene between the negro slave and his master.  The great 
vassals of the crown singly, or, if not singly, in 
combination--and they could always combine in the interest of 
their order--were too strong for the king, or to be brought under 
any public authority, and could issue from their fortified 
castles and rob and plunder to their hearts' content, with none 
to call them to an account.  Under the most thoroughly 
centralized government there is far more liberty for the people, 
and a far greater security for person and property, except in the 
case of the feudal nobles themselves, than was even dreamed of 
while the feudal regime was in full vigor.  Nobles were 
themselves free, it is conceded, but not the people.  The king 
was too weak, too restricted in his action by the feudal 
constitution to reach them, and the higher clergy were ex officio 
sovereigns, princes, barons, or feudal lords, and were led by 
their private interests to act with the feudal nobility, save 
when that nobility threatened the temporalities of the church.  
The only reliance, under God, left in feudal times to the poor 
people was in the lower ranks of the clergy, especially of the 
regular clergy.  All the great German emperors in the twelfth and
161
thirteenth centuries, who saw the evils of feudalism, and 
attempted to break it up and revive imperial Rome, became 
involved in quarrels with the chiefs of the religious society, 
and failed, because the interest of the Popes, as feudal 
sovereigns and Italian princes, and the interests of the 
dignified clergy, were for the time bound up with the feudal 
society, though their Roman culture and civilization made them at 
heart hostile to it.  The student of history, however strong his 
filial affection towards the visible head of the church, cannot 
help admiring the grandeur of the political views of Frederic the 
Second, the greatest and last of the Hohenstaufen, or refrain 
from dropping a tear over his sad failure.  He had great faults 
as a man, but he had rare genius as a statesman; and it is some 
consolation to know that he died a Christian death, in charity 
with all men, after having received the last sacraments of his 
religion.

The Popes, under the circumstances, were no doubt justified in 
the policy they pursued, for the Swabian emperors failed to 
respect the acknowledged rights of the church, and to remember 
their own incompetency in spirituals; but evidently their 
political views and aims were liberal, far-reaching, and worthy 
of admiration.
162
                Their success, if it could have been effected 
without lesion to the church, would have set Europe forward some 
two or three hundred years, and probably saved it from the 
schisms of the fourteenth and sixteenth centuries.  But it is 
easy to be wise after the event.  The fact is, that during the 
period when feudalism was in full vigor, the king was merely a 
shadow; the people found their only consolation in religion, and 
their chief protectors in the monks, who mingled with them, saw 
their sufferings, and sympathized with them, consoled them, 
carried their cause to the castle before the feudal lord and 
lady, and did, thank God, do something to keep alive religious 
sentiments and convictions in the bosom of the feudal society 
itself.  Whatever opinions may be formed of the monastic orders 
in relation to the present, this much is certain, that they were 
the chief civilizers of Europe, and the chief agents in 
delivering European society from feudal barbarism.

The aristocracy have been claimed as the natural allies of the 
throne, but history proves them to be its natural enemies, 
whenever it cannot be used in their service, and kings do not 
consent to be their ministers and to do their bidding.  A 
political aristocracy has at heart
163
                                   only the interests of its 
order, and pursues no line of policy but the extension or 
preservation of its privileges.  Having little to gain and much 
to lose, it opposes every political change that would either 
strengthen the crown or elevate the people.  The nobility in the 
French Revolution were the first to desert both the king and the 
kingdom, and kings have always found their readiest and firmest 
allies in the people.  The people in Europe have no such bitter 
feelings towards royalty as they have towards the feudal 
nobility--for kings have never so grievously oppressed them.  In 
Rome the patrician order opposed alike the emperor and the 
people, except when they, as chivalric nobles sometimes will do, 
turned courtiers or demagogues.  They were the people of Rome and 
the provinces that sustained the emperors, and they were the 
emperors who sustained the people, and gave to the provincials 
the privileges of Roman citizens.

Guaranties against excessive centralism are certainly needed, but 
the statesman will not seek them in the feudal organization of 
society--in a political aristocracy, whether founded on birth or 
private wealth, nor in a privileged class of any sort.  Better 
trust Caesar than Brutus, or even Cato.  Nor will he seek them
164
                                                               in 
the antagonism of interests intended to neutralize or balance 
each other, as in the English constitution.  This was the great 
error of Mr. Calhoun.  No man saw more clearly than Mr. Calhoun 
the utter worthlessness of simple paper constitutions, on which 
Mr. Jefferson placed such implicit reliance, or that the real 
constitution is in the state itself, in the manner in which the 
people themselves are organized; but his reliance was in 
constituting, as powers in the state, the several popular 
interests that exist, and pitting them against each other--the 
famous system of checks and balances of English states men.  He 
was led to this, because be distrusted power, and was more 
intention guarding against its abuses than on providing for its 
free, vigorous, and healthy action, going on the principle that 
"that is the best government which governs least." But, if the 
opposing interests could be made to balance one another perfectly, 
the result would be an equilibrium, in which power would be 
brought to a stand-still; and if not, the stronger would succeed 
and swallow up all the rest.  The theory of checks and balances 
is admirable if the object be to trammel power, and to have as 
little power in the government as possible; but it is a theory 
which is born from passions engendered by the struggle against
165
despotism or arbitrary power, not from a calm and philosophical 
appreciation of government itself.  The English have not 
succeeded in establishing their theory, for, after all, their 
constitution does not work so well as they pretend.  The landed 
interest controls at one time, and the mercantile and 
manufacturing interest at another.  They do not perfectly balance 
one another, and it is not difficult to see that the mercantile 
and manufacturing interest, combined with the moneyed interest, 
is henceforth to predominate.  The aim of the real statesman is 
to organize all the interests and forces of the state 
dialectically, so that they shall unite to add to its strength, 
and work together harmoniously for the common good.





166
CHAPTER VIII.

CONSTITUTION OF GOVERNMENT-CONCLUDED.


Though the constitution of the people is congenital, like the 
constitution of an individual, and cannot be radically changed 
without the destruction of the state, it must not be supposed 
that it is wholly withdrawn from the action of the reason and 
free-will of the nation, nor from that of individual statesmen.  
All created things are subject to the law of development, and may 
be developed either in a good sense or in a bad; that is, may be 
either completed or corrupted.  All the possibilities of the 
national constitution are given originally in the birth of the 
nation, as all the possibilities of mankind were given in the 
first man.  The germ must be given in the original constitution.  
But in all constitutions there is more than one element, and the 
several elements maybe developed pari passu, or unequally, one 
having the ascendency and suppressing the rest.  In the original 
constitution of Rome the patrician ele-
167
                                      ment was dominant, showing 
that the patriarchal organization of society still retained no 
little force.  The king was only the presiding officer of the 
senate and the leader of the army in war.  His civil functions 
corresponded very nearly to those of a mayor of the city of New 
York, where all the effective power is in the aldermen, common 
council, and heads of departments.  Except in name he was little 
else than a pageant.  The kings, no doubt, labored to develop and 
extend the royal element of the constitution.  This was natural; 
and it was equally natural that they should be resisted by the 
patricians.  Hence when the Tarquins, or Etruscan dynasty, 
undertook to be kings in fact as well as in name, and seemed 
likely to succeed, the patricians expelled them, and supplied 
their place by two consuls annually elected.  Here was a 
modification, but no real change of the constitution.  The 
effective Power, as before, remained in the senate.

But there was from early times a plebeian element in the 
population of the city, though forming at first no part of the 
political people.  Their origin is not very certain, nor their 
original position in the city.	Historians give different 
accounts of them.  But that they should, as they increased in 
numbers, wealth, 
168
                 and importance, demand admission into the 
political society, religious or solemn marriage, a voice in the 
government, and the faculty of holding civil and military offices, 
was only in the order of regular development.  At first the 
patricians fought them, and, failing to subdue them by force, 
effected a compromise, and bought up their leaders.  The 
concession which followed of the tribunitial veto was only a 
further development.  By that veto the plebeians gained no 
initiative, no positive power, indeed, but their tribunes, by 
interposing it, could stop the proceedings of the government.  
They could not propose the measures they liked, but they could 
prevent the legal adoption of measures they disliked--a faculty 
Mr. Calhoun asserted for the several States of the American Union 
in his doctrine of nullification, or State veto, as he called it.  
It was simply an obstructive power.

But from a power to obstruct legislative action to the power to 
originate or propose it, and force the senate to adopt it through 
fear of the veto of measures the patricians had at heart, was 
only a still further development.  This gained, the exclusively 
patrician constitution had disappeared, and Marius, the head of a 
great plebeian house, could be elected consul 
169
                                              and the plebeians 
in turn threaten to become predominant, which Sylla or Sulla, as 
dictator, seeing, tried in vain to prevent.  The dictator was 
provided for in the original constitution.  Retain the 
dictatorship for a time, strengthen the plebeian element by 
ruthless proscriptions of patricians and by recruits from the 
provinces, unite the tribunitial, pontifical, and military powers 
in the imperator designated by the army, all elements existing in 
the constitution from an early day, and already developed in the 
Roman state, and you have the imperial constitution, which 
retained to the last the senate and consuls, though with less and 
less practical power.  These changes are very great, but are none 
of them radical, dating from the recognition of	the plebs as 
pertaining to the Roman people.  They are normal developments, 
not corruptions, and the transition from the consular republic to 
the imperial was unquestionably a real social and political 
progress.  And yet the Roman people, had they chosen, could have 
given a different direction to the developments of their 
constitution.  There was Providence in the course of events, but 
no fatalism.

Sulla was a true patrician, a blind partisan of the past.  He 
sought to arrest the plebeian development led by Marius, and to 
restore the
170
            exclusively patrician government.  But it was too late.  
His proscriptions, confiscations, butcheries, unheard-of cruelties 
which anticipated and surpassed those of the French Revolution of 
1793, availed nothing.  The Marian or plebeian movement, 
apparently checked for a moment, resumed its march with renewed 
vigor under Julius, and triumphed at Pharsalia.  In vain Cicero, 
only accidentally associated with the patrician party, which 
distrusted him--in vain Cicero declaims, Cato scolds, or parades 
his impractical virtues, Brutus and Cassius seize the assassin's 
dagger, and strike to the earth "the foremost man of all the 
world;" the plebeian cause moves on with resistless force, 
triumphs anew at Philippi, and young Octavius avenges the murder 
of his uncle, and proves to the world that the assassination of a 
ruler is a blunder as well as a crime.  In vain does Mark Antony 
desert the movement, rally Egypt and the barbaric East, and seek 
to transfer the seat of empire from the Tiber to the banks of the 
Nile or the Orontes; plebeian and imperial Rome wins a final 
victory at Actium, and definitively secures the empire of the 
civilized world to the West.

Thus far the developments were normal, and advanced civilization.  
But Rome still retained 
171
                        the barbaric element of slavery in her 
bosom, and had conquered more barbaric nations than she had 
assimilated.  These nations she at first governed as tributary 
states, with their own constitutions and national chiefs; 
afterwards as Roman provinces, by her own proconsuls and prefects.  
When the emperors threw open the gates of the city to the 
provincials, and conceded them the rights and privileges of Roman 
citizens, they introduced not only a foreign element into the 
state, destitute of Roman patriotism, but the barbaric and 
despotic elements retained by the conquered nations as yet only 
partially assimilated.  These elements became germs of 
anti-republican developments, rather of corruptions, and prepared 
the downfall of the empire.  Doubtless these corruptions might 
have been arrested, and would have been, if Roman patriotism had 
survived the changes effected in the Roman population by the 
concession of Roman citizenship to provincials; but it did not, 
and they were favored as time went on by the emperors themselves, 
and more especially by Dioclesian, a real barbarian, who hated 
Rome, and by Constantine, surnamed the Great, a real despot, who 
converted the empire from a republican to a despotic empire.  
Rome fell from the force of barba-
172
                                 rism developed from within, far 
more than from the force of the barbarians hovering on her 
frontiers and invading her provinces.

The law of all possible developments is in the providential or 
congenital constitution; but these possible developments are many 
and various, and the reason and free-will of the nation as well 
as of individuals are operative in determining which of them 
shall be adopted.  The nation, under the direction of wise and 
able statesmen who understood their age and country, who knew how 
to discern between normal developments and barbaric corruptions, 
placed at the head of affairs in season, might have saved Rome 
from her fate, eliminated the barbaric and assimilated the 
foreign elements, and preserved Rome as a Christian and 
republican empire to this day, and saved the civilized world from 
the ten centuries of barbarism which followed her conquest by the 
barbarians of the North.  But it rarely happens that the real 
statesmen of a nation are placed at the head of affairs.

Rome did not fall in consequence of the strength of her external 
enemies, nor through the corruption of private morals and manners, 
which was never greater than under the first Triumvirate.  She 
fell from the want of true 
173
                           statesmanship in her public men, and 
patriotism in her people.  Private virtues and private vices are 
of the last consequence to individuals, both here and hereafter; 
but private virtues never saved, private vices never ruined a 
nation.  Edward the Confessor was a saint, and yet be prepared 
the way for the Norman conquest of England; and France owes 
infinitely less to St. Louis than to Louis XI., Richelieu, and 
Napoleon, who, though no saints, were statesmen.  What is 
specially needed in statesmen is public spirit, intelligence, 
foresight, broad views, manly feelings, wisdom, energy, 
resolution; and when statesmen with these qualities are placed at 
the head of affairs, the state, if not already lost, can, however 
far gone it may be, be recovered, restored, reinvigorated, 
advanced, and private vice and corruption disappear in the 
splendor of public virtue.  Providence is always present in the 
affairs of nations, but not to work miracles to counteract the 
natural effects of the ignorance, ineptness, short-sightedness, 
narrow views, public stupidity, and imbecility of rulers, because 
they are irreproachable and saintly in their private characters 
and relations, as was Henry VI. of England, or, in some respects, 
Louis XVI. of France.  Providence is God intervening through
174
                                                             the 
laws he by his creative act gives to creatures, not their 
suspension or abrogation.  It was the corruption of the 
statesmen, in substituting the barbaric element for the proper 
Roman, to which no one contributed more than Constantine, the 
first Christian emperor, that was the real cause of the downfall 
of Rome, and the centuries of barbarism that followed, relieved 
only by the superhuman zeal and charity of the church to save 
souls and restore civilization.

But in the constitution of the government, as distinguished from 
the state, the nation is freer and more truly sovereign.  The 
constitution of the state is that which gives to the people of a 
given territory political existence, unity, and individuality, 
and renders it capable of political action.  It creates political 
or national solidarity, in imitation of the solidarity of the 
race, in which it has its root.  It is the providential charter 
of national existence, and that which gives to each nation its 
peculiar character, and distinguishes it from every other nation.  
The constitution of government is the constitution by the 
sovereign authority of the nation of an agency or ministry for 
the management of its affairs, and the letter of instructions 
according to which the agent or minister is to
175
                                               act and conduct 
the matters intrusted to him.  The distinction which the English 
make between the sovereign and the ministry is analogous to that 
between the state and the government, only they understand by the 
sovereign the king or queen, and by the ministry the executive, 
excluding, or not decidedly including, the legislature and the 
judiciary.  The sovereign is the people as the state or body 
politic, and as the king holds from God only through the people, 
he is not properly sovereign, and is to be ranked with the 
ministry or government.  Yet when the state delegates the full or 
chief governing power to the king, and makes him its sole or 
principal representative, he may, with sufficient accuracy for 
ordinary purposes, be called sovereign.  Then, understanding by 
the ministry or government the legislative and judicial, as well 
as the executive functions, whether united in one or separated 
into distinct and mutually independent departments, the English 
distinction will express accurately enough, except for strictly 
scientific purposes, the distinction between the state and the 
government.

Still, it is only in despotic states, which are not founded on 
right, but force, that the king can say, L'etat, c'est moi, I am 
the state; and
176
               Shakespeare's usage of calling the king of France 
simply France, and the king of England simply England, smacks of 
feudalism, under which monarchy is an estate, property, not a 
public trust.  It corresponds to the Scottish usage of calling 
the proprietor by the name of his estate.  It is never to be 
forgotten that in republican states the king has only a delegated 
sovereignty, that the people, as well as God, are above him.  He 
holds his power, as the Emperor of the French professes to hold 
his, by the grace of God and the national will--the only title by 
which a king or emperor can legitimately hold power.

The king or emperor not being the state, and the government, 
whatever its form or constitution, being a creature of the state, 
he can be dethroned, and the whole government even virtually 
overthrown, without dissolving the state or the political society.  
Such an event may cause much evil, create much social confusion, 
and do grave injury to the nation, but the political society may 
survive it; the sovereign remains in the plenitude of his rights, 
as competent to restore government as be was originally to 
institute it.  When, in 1848, Louis Philippe was dethroned by the 
Parisian mob, and fled the kingdom, there was in France no
177
legitimate government, for all commissions ran in the king's 
name; but the organic or territorial people of France, the body 
politic, remained, and in it remained the sovereign power to 
organize and appoint a new government.  When, on the 2d of 
December, 1851, the president, by a coup d'etat, suppressed the 
legislative assembly and the constitutional government, there was 
no legitimate government standing, and the power assumed by the 
president was unquestionably a usurpation; but the nation was 
competent to condone his usurpation and legalize his power, and 
by a plebiscitum actually did so.  The wisdom or justice of the 
coup d'etat is another question, about which men may differ; but 
when the French nation, by its subsequent act, had condoned it, 
and formally conferred dictatorial powers on the prince-president, 
the principal had approved the act of his agent, and given him 
discretionary powers, and nothing more was to be said.  The 
imperial constitution and the election of the president to be 
emperor, that followed on December 2d, 1852, were strictly legal, 
and, whatever men may think of Napoleon III., it must be conceded 
that there is no legal flaw in his title, and that he holds his 
power by a
178
           title as high and as perfect as there is for any 
prince or ruler.

But the plebiscitum cannot be legally appealed to or be valid 
when and where there is a legal government existing and in the 
full exercise of its constitutional functions, as was decided by 
the Supreme Court of the United States in a case growing out of 
what is known as the Dorr rebellion in Rhode Island.  A suffrage 
committee, having no political authority, drew up and presented a 
new constitution of government to the people, plead a plebiscitum 
in its favor, and claimed the officers elected under it as the 
legally elected officers of the state.  The court refused to 
recognize the plebiscitum, and decided that it knew Rhode Island 
only as represented through the government, which had never 
ceased to exist.  New States in Territories have been organized 
on the strength of a plebiscitum when the legal Territorial 
government was in force, and were admitted as States into the 
Union, which, though irregular and dangerous, could be done 
without revolution, because Congress, that admitted them, is the 
power to grant the permission to organize as States and apply for 
admission.  Congress is competent to condone an offence against 
its own rights.  The real danger of the
179
                                        practice is, that it 
tends to create a conviction that sovereignty inheres in the 
people individually, or as population, not as the body politic or 
organic people attached to a sovereign domain; and the people who 
organize under a plebiscitum are not, till organized and admitted 
into the Union, an organic or a political people at all.  When 
Louis Napoleon made his appeal to a vote of the French people, he 
made an appeal to a people existing as a sovereign people, and a 
sovereign people without a legal government.  In his case the 
plebiscitum was proper and sufficient, even if it be conceded 
that it was through his own fault that France at the moment was 
found without a legal government.  When a thing is done, though 
wrongly done, you cannot act as if it were not done, but must 
accept it as a fact and act accordingly.

The plebiscitum, which is simply an appeal to the people outside 
of government, is not valid when the government has not lapsed, 
either by its usurpations or by its dissolution, nor is it valid 
either in the case of a province, or of a population that has no 
organic existence as an independent sovereign state.  The 
plebiscitum in France was valid, but in the Grand Duchy of 
Tuscany, the Duchies of Modena, Parma, and Lucca, and in the 
Kingdom of the Two
180
                   Sicilies it was not valid, for their legal 
governments had not lapsed; nor was it valid in the Aemilian 
provinces of the Papal States, because they were not a nation or 
a sovereign people, but only a portion of such nation or people.  
In the case of the states and provinces--except Lombardy, ceded 
to France by Austria, and sold to the Sardinian king--annexed to 
Piedmont to form the new kingdom of Italy, the plebiscitum was 
invalid, because implying the right of the people to rebel 
against the legal authority, and to break the unity and 
individuality of the state of which they form an integral part.  
The nation is a whole, and no part has the right to secede or 
separate, and set up a government for itself, or annex itself to 
another state, without the consent of the whole.  The solidarity 
of the nation is both a fact and a law.  The secessionists from 
the United States defended their action only on the ground that 
the States of the American Union are severally independent 
sovereign states, and they only obeyed the authority of their 
respective states.

The plebiscitum, or irregular appeal to what is called universal 
suffrage, since adopted by Louis Napoleon in France after the 
coup d'etat, is becoming not a little menacing to the stabil-
181
                                                            ity 
of governments and the rights and integrity of states, and is not 
less dangerous to the peace and order of society than "the 
solidarity of peoples" asserted by Kossuth, the revolutionary 
ex-governor of Hungary, the last stronghold of feudal barbarism 
in Christian Europe; for Russia has emancipated her serfs.

The nation, as sovereign, is free to constitute government 
according to its own judgment, under any form it 
pleases--monarchical, aristocratic, democratic, or mixed--vest 
all power in an hereditary monarch, in a class or hereditary 
nobles, in a king and two houses of parliament, one hereditary, 
the other elective, or both elective; or it may establish a 
single, dual, or triple executive, make all officers of 
government hereditary or all elective, and if elective, elective 
for a longer or a shorter time, by universal suffrage or a select 
body of electors.  Any of these forms and systems, and many 
others besides, are or may be legitimate, if established and 
maintained by the national will.  There is nothing in the law of 
God or of nature, antecedently to the national will, that gives 
any one of them a right to the exclusion of any one of the others.  
The imperial system in France is as legitimate as the federative 
system in the United States.  The only form or system that
182
                                                           is 
necessarily illegal is the despotic.  That can never be a truly 
civilized government, nor a legitimate government, for God has 
given to man no dominion over man.  He gave men, as St. Augustine 
says, and Pope St. Gregory the Great repeats, dominion over the 
irrational creation, not over the rational, and hence the 
primitive rulers of men were called pastors or shepherds, not 
lords.  It may be the duty of the people subjected to a despotic 
government to demean themselves quietly and peaceably towards it, 
as a matter of prudence, to avoid sedition, and the evils that 
would necessarily follow an attempted revolution, but not 
because, founded as it is on mere force, it has itself any right 
or legality.

All other forms of government are republican in their essential 
constitution, founded on public right, and held under God from 
and for the commonwealth, and which of them is wisest and best 
for the commonwealth is, for the most part, an idle question.  
"Forms of government," somebody has said, "are like shoes--that 
is the best form which best fit the feet that are to wear them."  
Shoes are to be fitted to the feet, not the feet to the shoes, 
and feet vary in size and conformation.  There is, in regard to 
government, as distinguished from the state,
183
                                             no antecedent right 
which binds the people, for antecedently to the existence of the 
government as a fact, the state is free to adopt any form that it 
finds practicable, or judges the wisest and best for itself.  
Ordinarily the form of the government practicable for a nation is 
determined by the peculiar providential constitution of the 
territorial people, and a form of government that would be 
practicable and good in one country may be the reverse in another.  
The English government is no doubt the best practicable in Great 
Britain, at present at least, but it has proved a failure 
wherever else it has been attempted.  The American system has 
proved itself, in spite of the recent formidable rebellion to 
overthrow it, the best and only practicable government for the 
United States, but it is impracticable everywhere else, and all 
attempts by any European or other American state to introduce it 
can end only in disaster.  The imperial system apparently works 
well in France, but though all European states are tending to it, 
it would not work well at all on the American continent, 
certainly not until the republic of the United States has ceased 
to exist.  While the United States remain the great American 
power, that system, or its kindred system, democratic centralism, 
can
184
    never become an American system, as Maximilian's experiment 
in Mexico is likely to prove.

Political propagandism, except on the Roman plan, that is, by 
annexation and incorporation, is as impracticable as it is 
wanting in the respect that one independent people owes to 
another.  The old French Jacobins tried to propagate, even with 
fire and sword, their system throughout Europe, as the only 
system compatible with the rights of man.  The English, since 
1688, have been great political propagandists, and at one time it 
seemed not unlikely that every European state would try the 
experiment of a parliamentary government, composed of an 
hereditary crown, an hereditary house of lords, and an elective 
house of commons.  The democratic Americans are also great 
political propagandists, and are ready to sympathize with any 
rebellion, insurrection, or movement in behalf of democracy in 
any part of the world, however mean or contemptible, fierce or 
bloody it may be; but all this is as unstatesmanlike as unjust; 
unstatesmanlike, for no form of government can bear 
transplanting, and because every independent nation is the sole 
judge of what best comports with its own interests, and its 
judgment is to be respected by the citizens as well as by the 
gov-
185
   ernments of other states.  Religious propagandism is a right 
and a duty, because religion is catholic and of universal 
obligation; and so is the jus gentium of the Romans, which is 
only the application to individuals and nations of the great 
principles of natural justice; but no political propagandism is 
ever allowable, because no one form of government is catholic in 
its nature, or of universal obligation.

Thoughtful Americans are opposed to political propagandism, and 
respect the right of every nation to choose its own form of 
government; but they hold that the American system is the best in 
itself, and that if other nations were as enlightened as the 
American, they would adopt it.  But though the American system, 
rightly understood, is the best, as they hold, it is not because 
other nations are less enlightened, which is by no means a fact, 
that they do not adopt, or cannot bear it, but solely because 
their providential constitutions do not require or admit it, and 
an attempt to introduce it in any of them would prove a failure 
and a grave evil.

Fit your shoes to your feet.  The law of the governmental 
constitution is in that of the nation.  The constitution of the 
government must grow out of the constitution of the state, and
186
accord with the genius, the character, the habits, customs, and 
wants of the people, or it will not work well, or tend to secure 
the legitimate ends of government.  The constitutions imagined by 
philosophers are for Utopia, not for any actual, living, 
breathing people.  You must take the state as it is, and develop 
your governmental constitution from it, and harmonize it with it.  
Where there is a discrepancy between the two constitutions, the 
government has no support in the state, in the organic people, or 
nation, and can sustain itself only by corruption or physical 
force.  A government may be under the necessity of using force to 
suppress an insurrection or rebellion against the national 
authority, or the integrity of the national territory, but no 
government that can sustain itself, not the state, only by 
physical force or large standing armies, can be a good government, 
or suited to the nation.  It must adopt the most stringent 
repressive measures, suppress liberty of speech and of conscience, 
outrage liberty in what it has the most intimate and sacred, and 
practise the most revolting violence and cruelty, for it can 
govern only by terror.  Such a government is unsuited to the 
nation.

This is seen in all history: in the attempt of the dictator Sulla 
to preserve the old patri-
187
                         cian government against the plebeian 
power that time and events had developed in the Roman state, and 
which was about to gain the supremacy, as we have seen, at 
Pharsalia, Philippi, and Actium; in the efforts to establish a 
Jacobinical government in France in 1793; in Rome in 1848, and 
the government of Victor Emmanuel in Naples in 1860 and 1861.  
These efforts, proscriptions, confiscations, military executions, 
assassinations, massacres, are all made in the name of liberty, 
or in defence of a government supposed to guaranty the well-being 
of the state and the rights of the people.  They are rendered 
inevitable by the mad attempt to force on a nation a constitution 
of government foreign to the national constitution, or repugnant 
to the national tastes, interests, habits, convictions, or whole 
interior life.  The repressive policy, adopted to a certain 
extent by nearly all European governments, grows out of the 
madness of a portion of the people of the several states in 
seeking to force upon the nation an anti-national constitution.  
The sovereigns may not be very wise, but they are wiser, more 
national, more patriotic than the mad theorists who seek to 
revolutionize the state and establish a government that has no 
hold in the national traditions, the national character, or the 
188
national life; and the statesman, the patriot, the true friend of 
liberty sympathizes with the national authorities, not with the 
mad theorists and revolutionists.

The right of a nation to change its form of government, and its 
magistrates or representatives, by whatever name called, is 
incontestable.  Hence the French constitution of l789, which 
involved that of 1793, was not illegal, for though accompanied by 
some irregularities, it was adopted by the manifest will of the 
nation, and consented to by all orders in the state.  Not its 
legality but its wisdom is to be questioned, together with the 
false and dangerous theories of government which dictated it.  
There is no compact or mutual stipulation between the state and 
the government.  The state, under God, is sovereign, and ordains 
and establishes the government, instead of making a contract, a 
bargain, or covenant, with it.  The common democratic doctrine on 
this point is right, if by people is understood the organic 
people attached to a sovereign domain, not the people as 
individuals or as a floating or nomadic multitude.  By people in 
the political sense, Cicero, and St. Augustine after him, 
understood the people as the republic, organized in reference to 
the common or public good.  With this under-
189
                                           standing, the 
sovereignty persists in the people, and they retain the supreme 
authority over the government.  The powers delegated are still 
the powers of the sovereign delegating them, and may be modified, 
altered, or revoked, as the sovereign judges proper.  The nation 
does not, and cannot abdicate or delegate away its own 
sovereignty, for sovereign it is, and cannot but be, so long as 
it remains a nation not subjected to another nation.

By the imperial constitution of the French government, the 
imperial power is vested in Napoleon III., and made hereditary in 
his family, in the male line of his legitimate descendants.  This 
is legal, but the nation has not parted with its sovereignty or 
bound itself by contract forever to a Napoleonic dynasty.  
Napoleon holds the imperial power "by the grace of God and the 
will of the nation," which means simply that he holds his 
authority from God, through the French people, and is bound to 
exercise it according to the law of God and the national will.  
The nation is as competent to revoke this constitution as the 
legislature is to repeal any law it is competent to enact, and in 
doing so breaks no contract, violates no right, for Napoleon and 
his descendants hold their right to the imperial throne subject 
to the
190
       national will from which it is derived.  In case the 
nation should revoke the powers delegated, he or they would have 
no more valid claim to the throne than have the Bourbons, whom 
the nation has unmistakably dismissed from its service.

The only point here to be observed is, that the change must be by 
the nation itself, in its sovereign capacity; not by a mob, nor 
by a part of the nation conspiring, intriguing, or rebelling, 
without any commission from the nation.  The first Napoleon 
governed by a legal title, but he was never legally dethroned, 
and the government of the Bourbons, whether of the elder branch 
or the younger, was never a legal government, for the Bourbons 
had lost their original rights by the election of the first 
Napoleon, and never afterwards had the national will in their 
favor.  The republic of 1848 was legal, in the sense that the 
nation acquiesced in it as a temporary necessity; but hardly 
anybody believed in it or wanted it, and the nation accepted it 
as a sort of locum tenens, rather than willed or ordained it.  
Its overthrow by the coup d'etat may not be legally defensible, 
but the election of Napoleon III. condoned the illegality, if 
there was any, and gave the emperor a legal title, that no 
republican, that none but a despot
191
                                   or a no-government man can 
dispute.  As the will of the nation, in so far as it contravenes 
not the law of God or the law of nature, binds every individual 
of the nation, no individual or number of individuals has, or can 
have, any right to conspire against him, or to labor to oust him 
from his place, till his escheat has been pronounced by the voice 
of the nation.  The state, in its sovereign capacity, willing it, 
is the only power competent to revoke or to change the form and 
constitution of the imperial government.  The same must be said 
of every nation that has a lawful government; and this, while it 
preserves the national sovereignty, secures freedom of progress, 
condemns all sedition, conspiracy, rebellion, revolution, as does 
the Christian law itself.





192
CHAPTER IX.

THE UNITED STATES


Sovereignty, under God, inheres in the organic people, or the 
people as the republic; and every organic people fixed to the 
soil, and politically independent of every other people, is a 
sovereign people, and, in the modern sense, an independent 
sovereign nation.

Sovereign states may unite in an alliance, league, or 
confederation, and mutually agree to exercise their sovereign 
powers or a portion of them in common, through a common organ or 
agency; but in this agreement they part with none of their 
sovereignty, and each remains a sovereign state or nation as 
before.  The common organ or agency created by the convention is 
no state, is no nation, has no inherent sovereignty, and derives 
all its vitality and force from the persisting sovereignty of the 
states severally that have united in creating it.  The agreement 
no more affects the sovereignty of the several states entering 
into it, than does the
193
                       appointment of an agent affect the rights 
and powers of the principal.  The creature takes nothing from the 
Creator, exhausts not, lessens not his creative energy, and it is 
only by his retaining and continuously exerting his creative 
power that the creature continues to exist.

An independent state or nation may, with or without its consent, 
lose its sovereignty, but only by being merged in or subjected to 
another.  Independent sovereign states cannot by convention, or 
mutual agreement, form themselves into a single sovereign state, 
or nation.  The compact, or agreement, is made by sovereign 
states, and binds by virtue of the sovereign power of each of the 
contracting parties.  To destroy that sovereign power would be to 
annul the compact, and render void the agreement.  The agreement 
can be valid and binding only on condition that each of the 
contracting parties retains the sovereignty that rendered it 
competent to enter into the compact, and states that retain 
severally their sovereignty do not form a single sovereign state 
or nation.  The states in convention cannot become a new and 
single sovereign state, unless they lose their several 
sovereignty, and merge it in the new sovereignty; but this they 
cannot do by agreement, because the moment the parties to the 
agreement cease
194
                to be sovereign, the agreement, on which alone 
depends the new sovereign state, is vacated, in like manner as a 
contract is vacated by the death of the contracting parties.

That a nation may voluntarily cede its sovereignty is frankly 
admitted, but it can cede it only to something or somebody 
actually existing, for to cede to nothing and not to cede is one 
and the same thing.  They can part with their own sovereignty by 
merging themselves in another national existence, but not by 
merging themselves in nothing; and, till they have parted with 
their own sovereignty, the new sovereign state does not exist.  A 
prince can abdicate his power, because by abdicating he simply 
gives back to the people the trust he had received from them; but 
a nation cannot, save by merging itself in another.  An 
independent state not merged in another, or that is not subject 
to another, cannot cease to be a sovereign nation, even if it 
would.

That no sovereign state can be formed by a agreement or compact 
has already been shown in the refutation of the theory of the 
origin of government in convention, or the so-called social 
compact.  Sovereign states are as unable to form themselves into 
a single sovereign state by mutual compact as are the sovereign 
individ-
195
       uals imagined by Rousseau.  The convention, either of 
sovereign states or of sovereign individuals, with the best will 
in the world, can form only a compact or agreement between 
sovereigns, and an agreement or compact, whatever its terms or 
conditions, is only an alliance, a league, or a confederation, 
which no one can pretend is a sovereign state, nation, or 
republic.

The question, then, whether the United States are a single 
sovereign state or nation, or a confederacy of independent 
sovereign states depends on the question whether the American 
people originally existed as one people or as several independent 
states.  Mr. Jefferson maintains that before the convention of 
1787 they existed as several independent sovereign states, but 
that since that convention, or the ratification of the 
constitution it proposed, they exist as one political people in 
regard to foreign nations, and several sovereign states in regard 
to their internal and domestic relations.  Mr. Webster concedes 
that originally the States existed as severally sovereign states, 
but contends that by ratifying the constitution they have been 
made one sovereign political people, state, or nation, and that 
the General government is a supreme national government, though 
with a reservation in favor of State rights.  But both 
196
                                                       are wrong.  
If the several States of the Union were severally sovereign 
states when they met in the convention, they are so now; and the 
constitution is only an agreement or compact between sovereigns, 
and the United States are, as Mr. Calhoun maintained, only a 
confederation of sovereign states, and not a single state or one 
political community.

But if the sovereignty persists in the States severally, any 
State, saving its faith, may whenever it chooses to do so, 
withdraw from the Union, absolve its subjects from all obligation 
to the Federal authorities, and make it treason in them to adhere 
to the Federal government.  Secession is, then, an incontestable 
right; not a right held under the constitution or derived from 
the convention but a right held prior to it, independently of it, 
inherent in the State sovereignty, and inseparable from it.  The 
State is bound by the constitution of the Union only while she is 
in it, and is one of the States united.  In ratifying the 
constitution she did not part with her sovereignty, or with any 
portion of it, any more than France has parted with her 
sovereignty, and ceased to be an independent sovereign nation, by 
vesting the imperial power in Napoleon III. and his legitimate 
heirs male.  The principal parts not with his power
197
                                                    to his agent, 
for the agent is an agent only by virtue of the continued power 
of the principal.  Napoleon is emperor by the will of the French 
people, and governs only by the authority of the French nation, 
which is as competent to revoke the powers it has conferred on 
him, when it judges proper, as it was to confer them.  The Union 
exists and governs, if the States are sovereign, only by the will 
of the State, and she is as competent to revoke the powers she 
has delegated as she was to delegate them.  The, Union, as far as 
she is concerned, is her creation, and what she is competent to 
make she is competent to unmake.

In seceding or withdrawing from the Union a State may act very 
unwisely, very much against her own interests and the interests 
of the other members of the confederacy; but, if sovereign, she 
in doing so only exercises her unquestionable right.  The other 
members may regret her action, both for her sake and their own, 
but they cannot accuse her or her citizens of disloyalty in 
seceding, nor of rebellion, if in obedience to her authority they 
defend their independence by force of arms against the Union.  
Neither she nor they, on the supposition, ever owed allegiance to 
the Union.  Allegiance is due from the citizen to the sovereign 
state, but never from
198
                      a sovereign state or from its citizens to 
any other sovereign state.  While the State is in the Union the 
citizen owes obedience to the United States, but only because his 
State has, in ratifying the Federal constitution, enacted that it 
and all laws and treaties made under it shall be law within her 
territory.  The repeal by the State of the act of ratification 
releases the citizen from the obligation even of obedience, and 
renders it criminal for him to yield it without her permission.

It avails nothing, on the hypothesis of the sovereignty of the 
States as distinguished from that of the United States, to appeal 
to the language or provisions of the Federal constitution.  That 
constitutes the government, not the state or the sovereign.  It 
is ordained by the sovereign, and if the States were severally 
independent and sovereign states, that sovereign is the States 
severally, not the States united.  The constitution is law for 
the citizens of a State only so long as the State remains one of 
the United States.  No matter, then, how clear and express the 
language, or stringent the provisions of the constitution, they 
bind only the citizens of the States that enact the constitution.  
The written constitution is simply a compact, and obliges only 
while the compact is continued by the
199
                                      States, each for itself.  
The sovereignty of the United States as a single or political 
people must be established before any thing in the constitution 
can be adduced as denying the right of secession.

That this doctrine would deprive the General government of all 
right to enforce the laws of the Union on a State that secedes, 
or the citizens thereof, is no doubt true; that it would weaken 
the central power and make the Union a simple voluntary 
association of states, no better than a rope of sand, is no less 
true; but what then?  It is simply saying that a confederation is 
inferior to a nation, and that a federal government lacks many of 
the advantages of a national government.  Confederacies are 
always weak in the centre, always lack unity, and are liable to 
be dissolved by the influence of local passions, prejudices, and 
interests.  But if the United States are a confederation of 
states or nations, not a single nation or sovereign state, then 
there is no remedy.

If the Anglo-American colonies, when their independence of Great 
Britain was achieved and acknowledged, were severally sovereign 
states, it has never since been in their power to unite and form 
a single sovereign state, or to form themselves into one 
indivisible sovereign
200
                      nation.  They could unite only by mutual
agreement, which gives only a confederation, in which each 
retains its own sovereignty, as two individuals, however closely 
united, retain each his own individuality.  No sovereignty is of 
conventional origin, and none can emerge from the convention that 
did not enter it.  Either the states are one sovereign people or 
they are not.  If they are not, it is undoubtedly a great 
disadvantage; but a disadvantage that must be accepted, and 
submitted to without a murmur.

Whether the United States are one sovereign people or only a 
confederation is a question of very grave importance.  If they 
are only a confederation of states--and if they ever were 
severally sovereign states, only a confederation they certainly 
are--state secession is an inalienable right, and the government 
has had no right to make war on the secessionists as rebels, or 
to treat them, when their military power is broken, as traitors, 
or disloyal persons.  The honor of the government, and of the 
people who have sustained it, is then deeply compromised.

What then is the fact?  Are the United States politically one 
people, nation, state, or republic, or are they simply 
independent sovereign states united in close and intimate 
alliance, league, or federation, by a mutual pact or
201
                                                     agreement?  
Were the people of the United States who ordained and established 
the written constitution one people, or were they not?  If they 
were not before ordaining and establishing the government, they 
are not now; for the adoption of the constitution did not and 
could not make them one.  Whether they are one or many is then 
simply a question of fact, to be decided by the facts in the 
case, not by the theories of American statesmen, the opinion of 
jurists, or even by constitutional law itself.  The old Articles 
of Conferation and the later Constitution can serve here only as 
historical documents.  Constitutions and laws presuppose the 
existence of a national sovereign from which they emanate, and 
that ordains them, for they are the formal expression of a 
sovereign will.  The nation must exist as an historical fact, 
prior to the possession or exercise of sovereign power, prior to 
the existence of written Constitutions and laws of any kind, and 
its existence must be established before they can be recognized 
as having any legal force or vitality.

The existence of any nation, as an independent sovereign nation, 
is a purely historical fact, for its right to exist as such is in 
the simple fact that it does so exist.  A nation de facto is a 
nation de jure, and when we have ascertained
202
                                             the fact, we have 
ascertained the right.  There is no right in the case separate 
from the fact--only the fact must be really a fact.  A people 
hitherto a part of another people, or subject to another 
sovereign, is not in fact a nation, because they have declared 
themselves independent, and have organized a government, and are 
engaged in what promises to be a successful struggle for 
independence.  The struggle must be practically over; the former 
sovereign must have practically abandoned the effort to reduce 
them to submission, or to bring them back under his authority, 
and if he continues it, does it as a matter of mere form; the 
postulant must have proved his ability to maintain civil 
government, and to fulfil within and without the obligations 
which attach to every civilized nation, before it can be 
recognized as an independent sovereign nation; because before it 
is not a fact that it is a sovereign nation.  The prior 
sovereign, when no longer willing or able to vindicate his right, 
has lost it, and no one is any longer bound to respect it, for 
humanity demands not martyrs to lost causes.

This doctrine may seem harsh, and untenable even, to those sickly 
philanthropists who are always weeping over extinct or oppressed
203
nationalities; but nationality in modern civilization is a fact, 
not a right antecedent to the fact.  The repugnance felt to this 
assertion arises chiefly from using the word nation sometimes in 
a strictly political sense, and sometimes in its original sense 
of tribe, and understanding by it not simply the body politic, 
but a certain relation of origin, family, kindred, blood, or 
race.  But God has made of one blood, or race, all the nations of 
men; and, besides, no political rights are founded by the law of 
nature on relations of blood, kindred, or family.  Under the 
patriarchal or tribal system, and, to some extent, under 
feudalism, these relations form the basis of government, but they 
are economical relations rather than civil or political, and, 
under Christian and modern civilization, are restricted to the 
household, are domestic relations, and enter not the state or 
body politic, except by way of reminiscence or abuse.  They are 
protected by the state, but do not found or constitute it.  The 
vicissitudes of time, the revolutions of states and empires, 
migration, conquest, and intermixture of families and races, have 
rendered it impracticable, even if it were desirable, to 
distribute people into nations according to their relations of 
blood or descent.

204
There is no civilized nation now existing that has been, 
developed from a common ancestor this side of Adam, and the most 
mixed are the most civilized.  The nearer a nation approaches to 
a primitive people of pure unmixed blood, the farther removed it 
is from civilization.  All civilized nations are political 
nations, and are founded in the fact, not on rights antecedent to 
the fact.  A hundred or more lost nationalities went to form the 
Roman empire, and who can tell us how many layers of crushed 
nationalities, superposed one upon another, serve for the 
foundation of the present French, English, Russian, Austrian, or 
Spanish nationalities?  What other title to independence and 
sovereignty, than the fact, can you plead in behalf of any 
European nation?  Every one has absorbed and extinguished--no one 
can say how many--nationalities, that once had as good a right to 
be as it has, or can have.  Whether those nationalities have been 
justly extinguished or not, is no question for the statesman; it 
is the secret of Providence.  Failure in this world is not always 
a proof of wrong; nor success, of right.  The good is sometimes 
overborne, and the bad sometimes triumphs; but it is 
consoling, and even just, to believe that the good oftener 
triumphs than the bad.

205
In the political order, the fact, under God, precedes the law.  
The nation holds not from the law, but the law holds from the 
nation.  Doubtless the courts of every civilized nation recognize 
and apply both the law of nature and the law of nations, but only 
on the ground that they are included, or are presumed to be 
included, in the national law, or jurisprudence.  Doubtless, too, 
the nation holds from God, under the law of nature, but only by 
virtue of the fact that it is a nation; and when it is a nation 
dependent on no other, it holds from God all the rights and 
powers of any independent sovereign nation.  There is no right 
behind the fact needed to legalize the fact, or to put the nation 
that is in fact a nation in possession of full national rights.  
In the case of a new nation, or people, lately an integral part 
of another people, or subject to another people@ the right of the 
prior sovereign must be extinguished indeed, but the extinction 
of that right is necessary to complete the fact, which otherwise 
would be only an initial, inchoate fact, not a fait accompli.  
But that right ceases when its claimant, willingly or 
unwillingly, formally or virtually, abandons it; and he does so 
when he practically abandons the struggle, and shows no ability 
or intention
206
             of soon renewing it with any reasonable prospect of 
success.

The notion of right, independent of the fact as applied to 
sovereignty, is founded in error.  Empty titles to states and 
kingdoms are of no validity.  The sovereignty is, under God, in 
the nation and the title and the possession are inseparable.  The 
title of the Palaeologi to the Roman Empire of the East, of the 
king of Sicily, the king of Sardinia, or the king of Spain--for 
they are all claimants--to the kingdom of Jerusalem founded by 
Godfrey and his crusaders, of the Stuarts to the thrones of 
England, Ireland, and Scotland, or of the Bourbons to the throne 
of France, are vacated and not worth the parchment on which they 
are engrossed.  The contrary opinion, so generally entertained, 
belongs to barbarism, not to civilization.  It is in modern 
society a relic of feudalism, which places the state in the 
government, and makes the government a private estate--a private, 
and not a public right--a right to govern the public, not a right 
to govern held from or by the public.

The proprietor may be dispossessed in fact of his estate by 
violence, by illegal or unjust means, without losing his right, 
and another may usurp it, occupy it, and possess it in fact 
without acquiring any right or legal title to it.
207
                                                   The man who 
holds the legal title has the right to oust him and re-enter upon 
his estate whenever able to do so.  Here, in the economical 
order, the fact and the right are distinguishable, and the actual 
occupant may be required to show his title-deeds.  Holding 
sovereignty to be a private estate, the feudal lawyers very 
properly distinguish between governments de facto and governments 
de jure, and argue very logically that violent dispossession of a 
prince does not invalidate his title.  But sovereignty, it has 
been shown, is not in the government, but in the state, and the 
state is inseparable from the public domain.  The people 
organized and held by the domain or national territory, are under 
God the sovereign nation, and remain so as long as the nation 
subsists without subjection to another.  The government, as 
distinguished from the state or nation, has only a delegated 
authority, governs only by a commission from the nation.  The 
revocation of the commission vacates, its title and extinguishes 
its rights.  The nation is always sovereign, and every organic 
people fixed to the soil, and actually independent of every 
other, is a nation.  There can then be no independent nation de 
facto that is not an independent nation de jure, nor de jure that 
is not de facto.  The moment a
208
                               people cease to be an independent 
nation in fact, they cease to be sovereign, and the moment they 
become in fact an independent nation, they are so of right.  
Hence in the political order the fact and the right are born and 
expire together; and when it is proved that a people, are in fact 
an independent nation, there is no question to be asked as to 
their right to be such nation.

In the case of the United States there is only the question of 
fact.  If they are in fact one people they are so in right, 
whatever the opinions and theories of statesmen, or even the 
decisions of courts; for the courts hold from the national 
authority, and the theories and opinions of statesmen may be 
erroneous.  Certain it is that the States in the American Union 
have never existed and acted as severally sovereign states.  
Prior to independence, they were colonies under the sovereignty 
of Great Britain, and since independence they have existed and 
acted only as states united.  The colonists, before separation 
and independence, were British subjects, and whatever rights the 
colonies had they held by charter or concession from the British 
crown.  The colonists never pretended to be other than British 
subjects, and the alleged ground of their complaint against the 
mother country was not that she had violated their
209
                                                   natural rights 
as men, but their rights as British subjects--rights, as 
contended by the colonists, secured by the English constitution 
to all Englishmen or British su6jects.  The denial to them of 
these common rights of Englishmen they called tyranny, and they 
defended themselves in throwing off their allegiance to George III., 
on the ground that he had, in their regard, become a tyrant, and 
the tyranny of the prince absolves the subject from his 
allegiance.

In the Declaration of Independence they declared themselves 
independent states indeed, but not severally independent.  The 
declaration was not made by the states severally, but by the 
states jointly, as the United States.  They unitedly declared 
their independence; they carried on the war for independence, won 
it, and were acknowledged by foreign powers and by the mother 
country as the United States, not as severally independent 
sovereign states.  Severally they have never exercised the full 
powers of sovereign states; they have had no flag--symbol of 
sovereignty--recognized by foreign powers, have made no foreign 
treaties, held no foreign relations, had no commerce foreign or 
interstate, coined no money, entered into no alliances or 
confederacies with foreign states or with one another, and in 
several re-
210
          spects have been more restricted in their powers in the 
Union than they were as British colonies.

Colonies are initial or inchoate states, and become complete 
states by declaring and winning their independence; and if the 
English colonies, now the United States, had separately declared 
and won their independence, they would unquestionably have become 
separately independent states, each invested by the law of nature 
with all the rights and powers of a sovereign nation.  But they 
did not do this.  They declared and won their independence 
jointly, and have since existed and exercised sovereignty only as 
states united, or the United States, that is, states sovereign in 
their union, but not in their separation.  This is of itself 
decisive of the whole question.

But the colonists have not only never exercised the full powers 
of sovereignty save as citizens of states united, therefore as 
one people, but they were, so far as a people at all, one people 
even before independence.  The colonies were all erected and 
endowed with their rights and powers by one and the same national 
authority, and the colonists were subjects of one and the same 
national sovereign.  Mr. Quincy Adams, who almost alone among our 
prominent statesmen maintains the unity of
211
                                           the colonial people, 
adds indeed to their subjection to the same sovereign authority, 
community of origin, of language, manners, customs, and law.  All 
these, except the last, or common law, may exist without national 
unity in the modern political sense of the term nation.  The 
English common law was recognized by the colonial courts, and in 
force in all the colonies, not by virtue of colonial legislation, 
but by virtue of English authority, as expressed in English 
jurisprudence.  The colonists were under the Common Law, because 
they were Englishmen, and subjects of the English sovereign.  
This proves that they were really one people with the English 
people, though existing in a state of colonial dependence, and 
not a separate people having nothing politically in common with 
them but in the accident of having the same royal person for 
their king.  The union with the mother country was national, not 
personal, as was the union existing between England and Hanover, 
or that still existing between the empire of Austria, formerly 
Germany, and the kingdom of Hungary; and hence the British 
parliament claimed, and not illegally, the right to tax the 
colonies for the support of the empire, and to bind them in all 
cases whatsoever--a claim the colonies them-
212
                                           selves admitted in 
principle by recognizing and observing the British navigation 
laws.  The people of the several colonies being really one people 
before independence, in the sovereignty of the mother country, 
must be so still, unless they have since, by some valid act, 
divided themselves or been divided into separate and independent 
states.

The king, say the jurists, never dies, and the heralds cry, "The 
king is dead!  Live the king!" Sovereignty never lapses, is never 
in abeyance, and the moment it ceases in one people it is renewed 
in another.  The British sovereignty ceased in the colonies with 
independence, and the American took its place.  Did the 
sovereignty, which before independence was in Great Britain, pass 
from Great Britain to the States severally, or to the States 
united?  It might have passed to them severally, but did it? 
There is no question of law or antecedent right in the case, but 
a simple question of fact, and the fact is determined by 
determining who it was that assumed it, exercised it, and has 
continued to exercise it.  As to this there is no doubt.  The 
sovereignty as a fact has been assumed and exercised by the 
United States, the States united, and never by the States 
separately or severally.  Then as a fact the sover-
213
                                                  eignty that 
before independence was in Great Britain, passed, on independence 
to the States united, and reappears in all its vigor in the 
United States, the only successor to Great Britain known to or 
recognized by the civilized world.

As the colonial people were, though distributed in distinct 
colonies, still one people, the people of the United States, 
though distributed into distinct and mutually independent States, 
are yet one sovereign people, therefore a sovereign state or 
nation, and not a simple league or confederacy of nations.

There is no doubt that all the powers exercised by the General 
Government, though embracing all foreign relations and all 
general interests and relations of all the States, might have 
been exercised by it under the authority of a mutual compact of 
the several States, and practically the difference between the 
compact theory and the national view would be very little, unless 
in cases like that of secession.  On the supposition that the 
American people are one political people, the government would 
have the right to treat secession, in the sense in which the 
seceders understand it, as rebellion, and to suppress it by 
employing all the physical force at its command; but on the 
compact
214
        theory it would have no such right.  But the question now 
under discussion turns simply on what has been and is the 
historical fact.  Before the States could enter into the compact 
and delegate sovereign powers to the Union, they must have 
severally possessed them.  It is historically certain that they 
did not possess them before independence; they did not obtain 
them by independence, for they did not severally succeed to the 
British sovereignty, to which they succeeded only as States 
united.  When, then, and by what means did they or could they 
become severally sovereign States?  The United States having 
succeeded to the British sovereignty in the Anglo-American 
colonies, they came into possession of full national sovereignty, 
and have alone held and exercised it ever since independence 
became a fact.  The States severally succeeding only to the 
colonies, never held, and have never been competent to delegate 
sovereign powers.

The old Articles of Confederation, it is conceded, were framed on 
the assumption that the States are severally sovereign; but the 
several States, at the same time, were regarded as forming one 
nation, and, though divided into separate States, the people were 
regarded as one people.  The Legislature of New York, as
216
                                                         early as 
1782, calls for an essential change In the Articles of 
Confederation, as proved to be inadequate to secure the peace, 
security, and prosperity of "the nation."  All the proceedings 
that preceded and led to the call of the convention of 1781 were 
based on the assumption that the people of the United States were 
one people.  The States were called united, not confederated 
States, even in the very Articles of Confederation themselves, 
and officially the United States were called "the Union."  That 
the united colonies by independence became united States, and 
formed really one and only one people, was in the thought, the 
belief, the instinct of the great mass of the people.  They acted 
as they existed through State as they had previously acted 
through colonial organization, for in throwing off the British 
authority there was no other organization through which they 
could act.  The States, or people of the States, severally sent 
their delegates to the Congress of the United States, and these 
delegates adopted the rule of voting in Congress by States, a 
rule that might be revived without detriment to national unity.  
Nothing was more natural, then, than that Congress, composed of 
delegates elected or appointed by States, should draw up articles 
of confederation
216
                 rather than articles of union, in order, if for 
no other reason, to conciliate the smaller States, and to prevent 
their jealousy of the larger States such as Virginia, 
Massachusetts, and Pennsylvania.

Moreover, the Articles of Confederation were drawn up and adopted 
during the transition from colonial dependence to national 
independence.  Independence was declared in 1776, but it was not 
a fact till l782, when the preliminary treaty acknowledging it 
was signed at Paris.  Till then the United States were not an 
independent nation; they were only a people struggling to become 
an independent nation.  Prior to that preliminary treaty, neither 
the Union nor the States severally were sovereign.  The articles 
were agreed on in Congress in 1777, but they were not ratified by 
all the States till May, 1781, and in 1782 the movement was 
commenced in the Legislature of New York for their amendment.  
Till the organization under the constitution ordained by the 
people of the United States in l787, and which went into 
operation in 1789, the United States had in reality only a 
provisional government, and it was not till then that the 
national government was definitively organized, and the line of 
demarcation between the General Gov-
217
                                   ernment and the particular 
State governments was fixed.

The Confederation was an acknowledged failure, and was rejected 
by the American people, precisely because it was not in harmony 
with the unwritten or Providential constitution of the nation; 
and it was not in harmony with that constitution precisely 
because it recognized the States as severally sovereign, and 
substituted confederation for union.  The failure of 
confederation and the success of union are ample proofs of the 
unity of the American nation.  The instinct of unity rejected 
State sovereignty in 1787 as it did in 1861.  The first and the 
last attempt to establish State sovereignty have failed, and the 
failure vindicates the fact that the sovereignty is in the States 
united, not in the States severally.




218
CHAPTER X

CONSTITUTION OF THE UNITED STATES


The constitution of the United States is twofold, written and 
unwritten, the constitution of the people and the constitution of 
the government.

The written constitution is simply a law ordained by the nation 
or people instituting and organizing the government; the 
unwritten constitution is the real or actual constitution of the 
people as a state or sovereign community, and constituting them 
such or such a state.  It is Providential, not made by the 
nation, but born with it.  The written constitution is made and 
ordained by the sovereign power, and presupposes that power as 
already existing and constituted.

The unwritten or Providential constitution of the United States 
is peculiar, and difficult to understand, because incapable of 
being fully explained by analogies borrowed from any other state 
historically known, or described
219
                                 by political philosophers.  It 
belongs	to the Graeco-Roman family, and is republican as	
distinguished from despotic constitutions, but it comes under the 
head of neither monarchical nor aristocratic, neither democratic 
nor mixed constitutions, and creates a state which is neither a 
centralized state nor a confederacy.  The difficulty of 
understanding it is augmented by the peculiar use under it of the 
word state, which does not in the American system mean a 
sovereign community or political society complete in itself, like 
France, Spain, or Prussia, nor yet a political society 
subordinate to another political society and dependent on it.  
The American States are all sovereign States united, but, 
disunited, are no States at all.  The rights and powers of the 
States are not derived from the United States, nor the rights and 
powers of the United States derived from the States.

The simple fact is, that the political or sovereign people of the 
United States exists as united States, and only as united States.  
The Union and the States are coeval, born together, and can exist 
only together.  Separation is dissolution--the death of both.  
The United States are a state, a single sovereign state; but this 
single sovereign state consists in the union and solidarity of 
States instead of individuals.  The
220
                                    Union is in each of the 
States, and each of the States is in the Union.

It is necessary to distinguish in the outset between the United 
States and the government of the United States, or the so-called 
Federal government, which the convention refused, contrary to its 
first intention to call the national government.  That government 
is not a supreme national government, representing all the powers 
of the United States, but a limited government, restricted by its 
constitution to certain specific relations and interests.  The 
United States are anterior to that government, and the first 
question to be settled relates to their internal and inherent 
Providential constitution as one political people or sovereign 
state.  The written constitution, in its preamble, professes to 
be ordained by "We, the people of the United States."  Who are 
this people?  How are they constituted, or what the mode and 
conditions of their political existence?  Are they the people of 
the States severally?  No; for they call themselves the people of 
the United States.  Are they a national people, really existing 
outside and independently of their organization into distinct and 
mutually independent States?  No; for they define themselves to 
be the people of the United States.  If they had considered
221
themselves existing as States only, they would have said "We, the 
States," and if independently of State organization, they would 
have said "We, the people," do ordain, &c.

The key to the mystery is precisely in this appellation United 
States, which is not the name of the country, for its distinctive 
name is America, but a name expressive of its political 
organization.  In it there are no sovereign people without 
States, and no States without union, or that are not united 
States.  The term united is not part of a proper name, but is 
simply an adjective qualifying States, and has its full and 
proper sense.  Hence while the sovereignty is and must be in the 
States, it is in the States united, not in the States severally, 
precisely as we have found the sovereignty of the people is in 
the people collectively or as society, not in the people 
individually.  The life is in the body, not in the members, 
though the body could not exist if it had no members; so the 
sovereignty is in the Union, not in the States severally; but 
there could be no sovereign union without the States, for there 
is no union where there is nothing united.

This is not a theory of the constitution, but the constitutional 
fact itself.  It is the simple historical fact that precedes the 
law and con-
222
           stitutes the law-making power.  The people of the 
United States are one people, as has already been proved: they 
were one people, as far as a people at all, prior to 
independence, because under the same Common Law and subject to 
the same sovereign, and have been so since, for as united States 
they gained their independence and took their place among 
sovereign nations, and as united States they have possessed and 
still possess the government.  As their existence before 
independence in distinct colonies did not prevent their unity, 
so their existence since in distinct States does not hinder them 
from being one people.  The States severally simply continue the 
colonial organizations, and united they hold the sovereignty that 
was originally in the mother country.  But if one people, they 
are one people existing in distinct State organizations, as 
before independence they were one people existing in distinct 
colonial organizations.  This is the original, the unwritten, and 
Providential constitution of the people of the United States.

This constitution is not conventional, for it existed before the 
people met or could meet in convention.  They have not, as an 
independent sovereign people, either established their union, or 
distributed themselves into distinct and mu-
223
                                           tually independent 
States.  The union and the distribution, the unity and the 
distinction, are both original in their constitution, and they 
were born United States, as much and as truly so as the son of a 
citizen is born a citizen, or as every one born at all is born a 
member of society, the family, the tribe, or the nation.  The 
Union and the States were born together, are inseparable in their 
constitution, have lived and grown up together; no serious 
attempt till the late secession movement has been made to 
separate them; and the secession movement, to all persons who 
knew not the real constitution of the United States, appeared 
sure to succeed, and in fact would have succeeded if, as the 
secessionists pretended, the Union had been only a confederacy, 
and the States had been held together only by a conventional 
compact, and not by a real and living bond of unity.  The popular 
instinct of national unity, which seemed so weak, proved to be 
strong enough to defeat the secession forces, to trample out the 
confederacy, and maintain the unity of the nation and the 
integrity of its domain.

The people can act only as they exist, as they are, not as they 
are not.  Existing originally only as distributed in distinct and 
mutually independent colonies, they could at first act only
224
through their colonial organizations, and afterward only through 
their State organizations.  The colonial people met in 
convention, in the person of representatives chosen by colonies, 
and after independence in the person of representatives chosen by 
States.  Not existing outside of the colonial or State 
organizations, they could not act outside or independently of 
them.  They chose their representatives or delegates by colonies 
or States, and called at first their convention a Congress; but 
by an instinct surer than their deliberate wisdom, they called it 
not the Congress of the confederate, but of the United States, 
asserting constitutional unity as well as constitutional 
multiplicity.  It is true, in their first attempt to organize a 
general government, they called the constitution they devised 
Articles of Confederation, but only because they had not attained 
to full consciousness of themselves; and that they really meant 
union, not confederation, is evident from their adopting, as the 
official style of the nation or new power, united, not 
confederate States.

That the sovereignty vested in the States united, and was 
represented in some sort by the Congress, is evident from the 
fact that the several States, when they wished to adopt State 
constitutions in place of colonial charters, felt not
225
                                                      at liberty 
to do so without asking and obtaining the permission of Congress, 
as the elder Adams informs us in his Diary, kept at the time; 
that is, they asked and obtained the equivalent of what has 
since, in the case of organizing new States, been called an 
"enabling act."  This proves that the States did not regard 
themselves as sovereign States out of the Union, but as 
completely sovereign only in it.  And this again proves that the 
Articles of Confederation did not correspond to the real, living 
constitution of the people.  Even then it was felt that the 
organization and constitution of a State in the Union could be 
regularly effected only by the permission of Congress; and no 
Territory can, it is well known, regularly organize itself as a 
State, and adopt a State constitution, without an enabling act by 
Congress, or its equivalent.

New States, indeed, have been organized and been admitted into 
the Union without an enabling act of Congress; but the case of 
Kansas, if nothing else, proves that the proceeding is irregular, 
illicit, invalid, and dangerous.  Congress, of course, can 
condone the wrong and validate the act, but it were better that 
the act should be validly done, and that there should be no wrong 
to condone.  Territories have organized
226
                                        as States, adopted State 
constitutions, and instituted State governments under what has 
been called "squatter sovereignty;" but such sovereignty has no 
existence, because sovereignty is attached to the domain; and the 
domain is in the United States.  It is the offspring of that 
false view of popular sovereignty which places it in the people 
personally or generically, irrespective of the domain, which 
makes sovereignty a purely personal right, not a right fixed to 
the soil, and is simply a return to the barbaric constitution of 
power.  In all civilized nations, sovereignty is inseparable from 
the state, and the state is inseparable from the domain.  The 
will of the people, unless they are a state, is no law, has no 
force, binds nobody, and justifies no act.

The regular process of forming and admitting new States explains 
admirably the mutual relation of the Union and the several 
States.  The people of a Territory belonging to the United States 
or included in the public domain not yet erected into a State and 
admitted into the Union, are subjects of the United States, 
without any political rights whatever, and, though a part of the 
population, are no part of the sovereign people of the United 
States.  They become a part of that people, with political rights
227
and franchises, only when they are erected into a State, and 
admitted into the Union as one of the United States.  They may 
meet in convention, draw up and adopt a constitution declaring or 
assuming them to be a State, elect State officers, senators, and 
representatives in the State legislature, and representatives and 
senators in Congress, but they are not yet a State, and are, as 
before, under the Territorial government established by the 
General Government.  It does not exist as a State till recognized 
by Congress and admitted into the Union.  The existence of the 
State, and the rights and powers of the people within the State, 
depend on their being a State in the Union, or a State united.  
Hence a State erected on the national domain, but itself outside 
of the Union, is not an independent foreign State, but simply no 
State at all, in any sense of the term.  As there is no union 
outside of the States, so is there no State outside of the Union; 
and to be a citizen either of a State or of the United States, it 
is necessary to be a citizen of a State, and of a State in the 
Union.  The inhabitants of Territories not yet erected into 
States are subjects, not citizens--that is, not citizens with 
political rights.  The sovereign people are not the people 
outside of State organization, nor the people of the States 
sever-
228
     ally, but the distinct people of the several States united, 
and therefore most appropriately called the people of the United 
States.

This is the peculiarity of the American constitution and is 
substantially the very peculiarity noted and dwelt upon by 
Mr. Madison in his masterly letter to Edward Everett, published 
in the "North American Review," October, 1830.

"I In order to understand the true character of the constitution 
of the United States," says Mr. Madison, "the error, not 
uncommon, must be avoided of viewing it through the medium either 
of a consolidated government or of a confederated government, 
whilst it is neither the one nor the other, but a mixture of 
both.  And having, in no model, the similitudes and analogies 
applicable to other systems of government, it must, more than any 
other, be its own interpreter, according to its text and the 
facts in the case.

"From these it will be seen that the characteristic peculiarities 
of the constitution are: 1. The mode of its formation. 2. The 
division of the supreme powers of government between the States 
in their united capacity and the States in their individual 
capacities.

"1. It was formed not by the governments of the component States, 
as the Federal Govern-
229
                     ment, for which it was substituted, was 
formed; nor was it formed by a majority of the people of the 
United States as a single community, in the manner of a 
consolidated government.  It was formed by the States; that is, 
by the people in each of the States, acting in their highest 
sovereign capacity, and formed consequently by the same authority 
which formed the State constitution.

"Being thus derived from the same source as the constitutions of 
the States, it has within each State the same authority as the 
constitution of the State, and is as much a constitution in the 
strict sense of the term, within its prescribed sphere, as the 
constitutions of the States are within their respective spheres; 
but with this obvious and essential difference, that, being a 
compact among the States in their highest capacity, and 
constituting the people thereof one people for certain purposes, 
it cannot be altered or annulled at the will of the States 
individually, as the constitution of a State may be at its 
individual will.

"2. And that it divides the supreme powers of government between 
the government of the United States and the governments of the 
individual States, is stamped on the face of the instrument; the 
powers of war and of taxation,
230
                               of commerce and treaties, and 
other enumerated powers vested in the government of the United 
States, are of high and sovereign a character as any of the 
powers reserved to the State governments."

Mr. Jefferson, Mr. Webster, Chancellor Kent, Judge Story, and 
nearly all the old Republicans, and even the old Federalists, on 
the question as to what is the actual constitution of the United 
States, took substantially the same view; but they all, as well 
as Mr. Madison himself, speak of the written constitution, which 
on their theory has and can have only a conventional value.  
Mr. Madison evidently recognizes no constitution of the people 
prior to the written constitution, from which the written 
constitution, or the constitution of the government, derives all 
its force and vitality.  The organization of the American people, 
which he knew well--no man better,--and which he so justly 
characterizes, he supposes to have been deliberately formed by 
the people themselves, through the convention--not given them by 
Providence as their original and inherent constitution.  But this 
was merely the effect of the general doctrine which he had 
adopted, in common with nearly all his contemporaries, of the 
origin of the state in compact, and may be
231
                                           eliminated from his 
view of what the constitution actually is, without affecting that 
view itself.

Mr. Madison lays great stress on the fact that though the 
constitution of the Union was formed by the States, it was 
formed, not by the governments, but by the people of the several 
States; but this makes no essential difference, if the people are 
the people of the States, and sovereign in their severalty, and 
not in their union.  Had it been formed by the State governments 
with the acquiescence of the people, it would have rested on as 
high authority as if formed by the people of the State in 
convention assembled.  The only difference is, that if the State 
ratified it by the legislature, she could abrogate it by the 
legislature; if in convention, she could abrogate it only in 
convention.  Mr. Madison, following Mr. Jefferson, supposes the 
constitution makes the people of the several States one people 
for certain specific purposes, and leaves it to be supposed that 
in regard to all other matters, or in all other relations, they 
are sovereign; and hence he makes the government a mixture of a 
consolidated government and a confederated government, but 
neither the one nor the other exclusively.  Say the people of the 
United States were one people in all
232
                                     respects, and under a 
government which is neither a consolidated nor a confederated 
government, nor yet a mixture of the two, but a government in 
which the powers of government are divided between a general 
government and particular governments, each emanating from the 
same source, and you will have the simple fact, and precisely 
what Mr. Madison means, when is eliminated what is derived from 
his theory of the origin of government in compact.  It is this 
theory of the conventional origin of the constitution, and which 
excludes the Providential or real constitution of the people, 
that has misled him and so many other eminent statesmen and 
constitutional lawyers.

The convention did not create the Union or unite the States, for 
it was assembled by the authority of the United States who were 
present in it.  The United States or Union existed before the 
convention, as the convention itself affirms in declaring one of 
its purposes to be "to provide for a more perfect union."  If 
there had been no union, it could not and would not have spoken 
of providing for a more perfect union, but would have stated its 
purpose to be to create or form a union.  The convention did not 
form the Union, nor in fact provide for a more perfect union; it 
simply provided for the
233
                        more perfect representation or expression 
in the General government of the Union already existing.  The 
convention, in common with the statesmen at the time, recognized 
no unwritten or Providential constitution of a people, and 
regarded the constitution of government as the constitution of 
the state, and consequently sometimes put the state for the 
government.  In intepreting its language, it is necessary to 
distinguish between its act and its theory.  Its act is law, its 
theory is not.  The convention met, among other things, to 
organize a government which should more perfectly represent the 
union of the States than did the government created by the 
Articles of Confederation.

The convention, certainly, professes to grant or concede powers 
to the United States, and to prohibit powers to the States; but 
it simply puts the state for the government.  The powers of the 
United States are, indeed, grants or trusts, but from God through 
the law of nature, and are grants, trusts, or powers always 
conceded to every nation or sovereign people.  But none of them 
are grants from the convention.  The powers the convention grants 
or concedes to the United States are powers granted or conceded 
by the United States to the General government it assembled to 
organize and establish, 
234
                        which, as it extends over the whole 
population and territory of the Union, and, as the interests it 
is charged with relate to all the States in common, or to the 
people as a whole, is with no great impropriety called the 
government of the United States, in contradistinction from the 
State governments, which have each only a local jurisdiction.  
But the more exact term is, for the one, the general government, 
and for the others, particular governments, as having charge only 
of the particular interests of the State; and the two together 
constitute the government of the United States, or the complete 
national government; for neither the General government nor the 
State government is complete in itself.  The convention developed 
a general government, and prescribed its powers, and fixed their 
limits and extent, as well as the bounds of the powers of the 
State or particular governments; but they are the United States 
assembled in convention that do all this, and, therefore, 
strictly speaking, no powers are conceded to the United States 
that they did not previously possess.  The convention itself, in 
the constitution it ordained, defines very clearly from whom the 
General government holds its powers.  It holds them, as we I 
have seen, from "We, the people
235
                                 of the United States;" not we, 
the people of the States severally, but of the States united.  If
it had meant the States severally, it would have said, We, the 
States; if it had recognized and meant the population of the 
country irrespective of its organization into particular States, 
it would have said simply, We, the people.  By saying "We, the 
people of the United States," it placed the sovereign power where 
it is, in the people of the States united.

The convention ordains that the powers not conceded to the 
General government or prohibited to the particular governments, 
"are reserved to the States respectively, or to the people." But 
the powers reserved to the States severally are reserved by order 
of the United States, and the powers not so reserved are reserved 
to the people.  What people?  The first thought is that they are 
the people of the States severally; for the constitution 
understands by people the state as distinguished from the state 
government; but if this had been its meaning in this place, it 
would have said, "are reserved to the States respectively, or to 
the people" thereof.  As it does not say so, and does not define 
the people it means, it is necessary to understand by them the 
people called in the preamble "the people of the United States."  
This is con-
236
           firmed by the authority reserved to amend the 
constitution, which certainly is not reserved to the States 
severally, but necessarily to the power that ordains the 
constitution--"We, the people of the United States."  No power 
except that which ordains is or can be competent to amend a 
constitution of government.  The particular mode prescribed by 
the convention in which the constitution of the government may be 
amended has no bearing on the present argument, because it is 
prescribed by the States united, not severally, and the power to 
amend is evidently reserved, not indeed to the General 
government, but to the United States; for the ratification by any 
State or Territory not in the Union counts for nothing.  The 
States united, can, in the way prescribed, give more or less 
power to the General government, and reserve more or less power 
to the States individually.  The so-called reserved powers are 
really reserved to the people of the United States, who can make 
such disposition of them as seems to them good.

The conclusion, then, that the General government holds from the 
States united, not from the States severally, is not invalidated 
by the fact that its constitution was completed only by the 
ratification of the States in their individ-
237
                                           ual capacity.  The 
ratification was made necessary by the will of the people in 
convention assembled; but the convention was competent to 
complete it and put it in force without that ratification, had it 
so willed.  The general practice under the American system is for 
the convention to submit the constitution it has agreed on to the 
people, to be accepted or rejected by a plebiscitum; but such 
submission, though it may be wise and prudent, is not necessary.  
The convention is held to be the convention of the people, and to 
be clothed with the full authority of the sovereign people, and 
it is in this that it differs from the congress or the 
legislature.  It is not a congress of delegates or ministers who 
are obliged to act under instructions, to report their acts to 
their respective sovereigns for approval or rejection; it is 
itself sovereign, and may do whatever the people themselves can 
do.  There is no necessity for it to appeal to a plebiscitum to 
complete its acts.  That the convention, on the score of 
prudence, is wise in doing so, nobody questions; but the 
convention is always competent, if it chooses, to ordain the 
constitution without appeal.  The power competent to ordain the 
constitution is always competent to change, modify, or amend it.  
That amend-
238
          ments to the constitution of the government can be 
adopted only by being proposed by a convention of all the States 
in the Union, or by being proposed, by a two-thirds vote of both 
houses of Congress, and ratified by three-fourths of the States, 
is simply a conventional ordinance, which the convention can 
change at its pleasure.  It proves nothing as it stands but the 
will of the convention.

The term ratification itself, because the term commonly used in 
reference to treaties between sovereign powers, has been seized 
on, since sometimes used by the convention, to prove that the 
constitution emanates from the States severally, and is a treaty 
or compact between sovereign states, not an organic or 
fundamental law ordained by a single sovereign will; but this 
argument is inadmissible, because, as we have just seen, the 
convention is competent to ordain the constitution without 
submitting it for ratification, and because the convention uses 
sometimes the word adopt instead of the word ratify.  That the 
framers of the constitution held it to be a treaty, compact, or 
agreement among sovereigns, there is no doubt, for they so held 
in regard to all constitution of government; and there is just as 
little doubt that they intended to constitute, and firmly 
believed that
239
              they were constituting a real government.  
Mr. Madison's authority on this point is conclusive.  They 
unquestionably regarded the States, prior to the ratification of 
the constitution they proposed, as severally sovereign, as they 
were declared to be by the old Articles of Confederation, but 
they also believed that all individuals are sovereign prior to 
the formation of civil society.  Yet very few, if any, of them 
believed that they remained sovereign after the adoption of the 
constitution; and we may attribute to their belief in the 
conventional origin of all government,--the almost universal 
belief of the time among political philosophers,--the little 
account which they made of the historical facts that prove that 
the people of the United States were always one people, and that 
the States never existed as severally sovereign states.

The political philosophers of the present day do not generally 
accept the theory held by our fathers, and it has been shown in 
these pages to be unsound and incompatible with the essential 
nature of government.  The statesmen of the eighteenth century 
believed that the state is derived from the people individually, 
and held that sovereignty is created by the people in convention.  
The rights and powers of the state, they held, were made up of 
the 
240
    rights held by individuals under the law of nature, and which 
the individuals surrendered to civil society on its formation.  
So they supposed that independent sovereign states might meet in 
convention, mutually agree to surrender a portion of their 
rights, organize their surrendered rights into a real government, 
and leave the convention shorn, at least, of a portion of their 
sovereignty.  This doctrine crops out everywhere in the writings 
of the elder Adams, and is set forth with rare ability by 
Mr. Webster, in his great speech in the Senate against the State 
sovereignty doctrine of General Hayne and Mr. Calhoun, which won 
for him the honorable title of Expounder of the Constitution--and 
expound it he, no doubt, did in the sense of its framers.  He 
boldly concedes that prior to the adoption of the constitution, 
the people of the United States were severally sovereign states, 
but by the constitution they were made one sovereign political 
community or people, and that the States, though retaining 
certain rights, have merged their several sovereignty in the 
Union.

The subtle mind of Mr. Calhoun, who did not hold that a state can 
originate in compact, proved to Mr. Webster that his theory could 
not stand; that, if the States went into
241
                                         the convention sovereign 
States, they came out of it sovereign States; and that the 
constitution they formed could from the nature of the case be 
only a treaty, compact, or agreement between sovereigns.  It 
could create an agency, but not a government.  The sovereign 
States could only delegate the exercise of their sovereign 
powers, not the sovereign powers themselves.  The States could 
agree to exercise certain specific powers of sovereignty only in 
common, but the force and vitality of the agreement depended on 
the States, parties to the agreement retaining respectively their 
sovereignty.  Hence, he maintained that sovereignty, after as 
before the convention, vested in the States severally.  Hence 
State sovereignty, and hence his doctrine that in all cases that 
cannot come properly before the Supreme Court of the United 
States for decision, each State is free to decide for itself, on 
which he based the right of nullification, or the State veto of 
acts of Congress whose constitutionality the State denies.  
Mr. Calhoun was himself no secessionist, but he laid down the 
premises from which secession is the logical deduction; and large 
numbers of young men, among the most open, the most generous, and 
the most patriotic in the country, adopted his premises,
242
                                                         without 
being aware of this fact any more than he himself was, and who 
have been behind none in their loyalty to the Union, and in their 
sacrifices to sustain it, in the late rebellion.

The formidable rebellion which is now happily suppressed, and 
which attempted to justify itself by the doctrine of State 
sovereignty, has thrown, in many minds, new light on the subject, 
and led them to re-examine the historical facts in the case from 
a different point of view, to see if Mr. Calhoun's theory is not 
as unfounded as be had proved Mr. Webster's theory to be.  The 
facts in the case really sustain neither, and both failed to see 
it: Mr. Calhoun because be had purposes to accomplish which 
demanded State sovereignty, and Mr. Webster because he examined 
them in the distorting medium of the theory or understanding of 
the statesmen of the eighteenth century.  The civil war has 
vindicated the Union, and defeated the armed forces of the State 
sovereignty men; but it has not refuted their doctrine, and as 
far as it has had any effect, it has strengthened the tendency to 
consolidation or centralism.

But the philosophy, the theory of government, the understanding 
of the framers of the constitution, must be considered, if the 
expres-
243
      sion will be allowed, as obiter dicta, and be judged on 
their merits.  What binds is the thing done, not the theory on 
which it was done, or on which the actors explained their work 
either to themselves or to others.  Their political philosophy, 
or their political theory, may sometimes affect the phraseology 
they adopt, but forms no rule for interpreting their work.  Their 
work was inspired by and accords with the historical facts in the 
case, and is authorized and explained by them.  The American 
people were not made one people by the written constitution, as 
Mr. Jefferson, Mr. Madison, Mr. Webster, and so many others 
supposed, but were made so by the unwritten constitution, born 
with and inherent in them.




244
CHAPTER XI.

THE CONSTITUTION--CONTINUED.


Providence, or God operating through historical facts, 
constituted the American people one political or sovereign 
people, existing and acting in particular communities, 
organizations, called states.  This one people organized as 
states, meet in convention, frame and ordain the constitution of 
government, or institute a general government in place of the 
Continental Congress; and the same people, in their respective 
State organizations, meet in convention in each State, and frame 
and ordain a particular government for the State individually, 
which, in union with the General government, constitutes the 
complete and supreme government within the States, as the General 
government, in union with all the particular governments, 
constitutes the complete and supreme government of the nation or 
whole country.  This is clearly the view taken by Mr. Madison in 
his letter to Mr. Everett, 
245
                           when freed from his theory of the 
origin of government in compact.

The constitution of the people as one people, and the 
distinction at the same time of this one people into particular 
States, precedes the convention, and is the unwritten 
constitution, the Providential constitution, of the American 
people or civil society, as distinguished from the constitution 
of the government, which, whether general or particular, is the 
ordination of civil society itself.  The unwritten constitution 
is the creation or constitution of the sovereign, and the 
sovereign providentially constituted constitutes in turn the 
government, which is not sovereign, but is clothed with just so 
much and just so little authority as the sovereign wills or 
ordains.

The sovereign in the republican order is the organic people, or 
State, and is with us the United States, for with us the organic 
people exist only as organized into States united, which in their 
union form one compact and indissoluble whole.  That is to say, 
the organic American people do not exist as a consolidated people 
or state; they exist only as organized into distinct but 
inseparable States.  Each State is a living member of the one 
body, and derives its life from its union with the body, so that 
the Amer-
246
        ican state is one body with many members; and the 
members, instead of being simply individuals, are States, or 
individuals organized into States.  The body consists of many 
members, and is one body, because the members are all members of 
it, and members one of another.  It does not exist as separate 
or distinct from the members, but exists in their solidarity or 
membership one of another.  There is no sovereign people or 
existence of the United States distinguishable from the people 
or existence of the particular States united.  The people of the 
United States, the state called the United States, are the 
people of the particular States united.  The solidarity of the 
members constitutes the unity of the body.  The difference 
between this view and Mr. Madison's is, that while his view 
supposes the solidarity to be conventional, originating and 
existing in compact, or agreement, this supposes it to be real, 
living, and prior to the convention, as much the work of 
Providence as the existence in the human body of the living 
solidarity of its members.  One law, one life, circulates 
through all the members, constituting them a living organism, 
binding them in living union, all to each and each to all.

Such is the sovereign people, and so far the original unwritten 
constitution.  The sovereign, 
247
                              in order to live and act, must 
have an organ through which be expresses his will.  This organ 
under the American system, is primarily the Convention.  The 
convention is the supreme political body, the concrete sovereign 
authority, and exercises practically the whole sovereign power 
of the people.  The convention persists always, although not in 
permanent session.  It can at any time be convened by the 
ordinary authority of the government, or, in its failure, by a 
plebiscitum.

Next follows the Government created and constituted by the 
convention.  The government is constituted in such manner, and 
has such and only such powers, as the convention ordains.  The 
government has, in the strict sense, no political authority 
under the American system, which separates the government from 
the convention.  All political questions proper, such as the 
elective franchise, eligibility, the constitution of the several 
departments of government, as the legislative, the judicial, and 
the executive, changing, altering, or amending the constitution 
of government, enlarging, or contracting its powers, in a word, 
all those questions that arise on which it is necessary to take 
the immediate orders of the sovereign, belong not to the 
government, but to the convention; and where the will of the 
sover-
248
     eign is not sufficiently expressed in the constitution, a 
new appeal to the convention is necessary, and may always be had.  
The constitution of Great Britain makes no distinction between 
the convention and the government.  Theoretically the 
constitution of Great Britain is feudal, and there is, properly 
speaking, no British state; there are only the estates, king, 
lords, and commons, and these three estates constitute the 
Parliament, which is held to be omnipotent; that is, has the 
plenitude of political sovereignty.  The British Parliament, 
composed of the three estates, possesses in itself all the 
powers of the convention in the American constitution, and is at 
once the convention and the government.  The imperial 
constitution of France recognizes no convention, but clothes the 
senate with certain political functions, which, in some 
respects, subjects theoretically the sovereign to his creature.  
The emperor confessedly holds his power by the grace of God and 
the will of the nation, which is a clear acknowledgment that the 
sovereignty vests in the French people as the French state; but 
the imperial constitution, which is the constitution of the 
government, not of the state, studies, while acknowledging the 
sovereignty of the people, to render it nugatory, by 
249
                                                     transferring 
it, under various subtle disguises, to the government, and 
practically to the emperor as chief of the government.  The 
senate, the council of state, the legislative body, and the 
emperor, are all creatures of the French state, and have properly 
no political functions, and to give them such functions is to 
place the sovereign under his own subjects!  The real aim of the 
imperial constitution is to secure despotic power under the 
guise of republicanism.  It leaves and is intended to leave the 
nation no way of practically asserting its sovereignty but by 
either a revolution or a plebiscitum, and a plebiscitum is 
permissible only where there is no regular government.

The British constitution is consistent with itself, but imposes 
no restriction on the power of the government.  The French 
imperial constitution is illogical, inconsistent with itself as 
well as with the free action of the nation.  The American 
constitution has all the advantages of both, and the 
disadvantages of neither.  The convention is not the government 
like the British Parliament, nor a creature of the state like 
the French senate, but the sovereign state itself, in a 
practical form.  By means of the convention the government is 
restricted to its delegated powers, and these, if found in 
practice either 
250
                too great or too small, can be enlarged or 
contracted in a regular, orderly way, without resorting to a 
revolution or to a plebiscitum.  Whatever political grievances 
there may be, there is always present the sovereign convention 
competent to redress them.  The efficiency of power is thus 
secured without danger to liberty, and freedom without danger to 
power.  The recognition of the convention, the real political 
sovereign of the country and its separation from and 
independence of the ordinary government, is one of the most 
striking features of the American constitution.

The next thing to be noted, after the convention, is the 
constitution by the convention of the government.  This 
constitution, as Mr. Madison well observes, divides the powers 
conceded by the convention to government between the General 
Government and the particular State governments.  Strictly 
speaking, the government is one, and its powers only are divided 
and exercised by two sets of agents or ministries.  This 
division of the powers of government could never have been 
established by the convention if the American people had not 
been providentially constituted one people, existing and acting 
through particular State organizations.  Here the unwritten 
constitution, or the constitution 
251
                                  written in the people 
themselves, rendered practicable and dictated the written 
constitution, or constitution ordained by the convention and 
engrossed on parchment.  It only expresses in the government the 
fact which pre-existed in the national organization and life.

This division of the powers of government is peculiar to the 
United States, and is an effective safeguard against both feudal 
disintegration and Roman centralism.  Misled by their prejudices 
and peculiar interests, a portion of the people of the United 
States, pleading in their justification the theory of State 
sovereignty, attempted disintegration, secession, and national 
independence separate from that of the United States, but the 
central force of the constitution was too strong for them to 
succeed.  The unity of the nation was too strong to be 
effectually broken.  No doubt the reaction against secession and 
disintegration will strengthen the tendency to centralism, but 
centralism can succeed no better than disintegration has 
succeeded because the General government has no subsistentia, no 
suppositum, to borrow a theological term, outside or independent 
of the States.  The particular governments are stronger, if 
there be any difference, to protect the States against 
centralism than the General government is to protect the
252
                                                         Union 
against disintegration; and after swinging for a time too far 
toward one extreme and then too far toward the other, the public 
mind will recover its equilibrium, and the government move on in 
its constitutional path.

Republican Rome attempted to guard against excessive centralism 
by the tribunitial veto, or by the organization of a negative or 
obstructive power.  Mr. Calhoun thought this admirable, and 
wished to effect the same end here, where it is secured by 
other, more effective, and less objectionable means, by a State 
veto on the acts of Congress, by a dual executive, and by 
substituting concurrent for numerical majorities.  Imperial Rome 
gradually swept away the tribunitial veto, concentrated all 
power in the hands of the emperor, became completely 
centralized, and fell.  The British constitution seeks the same 
end by substituting estates for the state, and establishing a 
mixed government, in which monarchy, aristocracy, and democracy 
temper, check, or balance each other; but practically the 
commons estate has become supreme, and the nobility govern not 
in the house of lords, and can really influence public affairs 
only through the house of commons.  The principle of the British 
constitution is not the division of the powers of government, 
but the an-
253
          tagonism of estates, or rather of interests, trusting 
to the obstructive influence of that antagonism to preserve the 
government from pure centralism.  Hence the study of the British 
statesman is to manage diverse and antagonistic parties and 
interests so as to gain the ability to act, which he can do only 
by intrigue, cajolery, bribery in one form or another, and 
corruption of every sort.  The British government cannot be 
carried on by fair, honest, and honorable means, any more than 
could the Roman under the antagonism created by the tribunitial 
veto.  The French tried the English system of organized 
antagonism in 1789, as a cure for the centralism introduced by 
Richelieu and Louis XIV., and again under the Restoration and 
Louis Philippe, and called it the system of constitutional 
guarantees; but they could never manage it, and they have taken 
refuge in unmitigated centralism under Napoleon III., who, 
however well disposed, finds no means in the constitution of the 
French nation of tempering it.  The English system, called the 
constitutional, and sometimes the parliamentary system, will not 
work in France, and indeed works really well nowhere.

The American system, sometimes called the Federal system, is not 
founded on antagonism
254
                      of classes, estates, or interests, and is 
in no sense a system of checks and balances.  It needs and 
tolerates no obstructive forces.  It does not pit section 
against section, the States severally against the General 
government, nor the General government against the State 
governments, and nothing is more hurtful than the attempt to 
explain it and work it on the principles of British 
constitutionalism.  The convention created no antagonistic 
powers; it simply divided the powers of government, and gave 
neither to the General government nor to the State governments 
all the powers of government, nor in any instance did it give to 
the two governments jurisdiction in the same matters. Hence each 
has its own sphere, in which it can move on without colliding 
with that of the other.  Each is independent and complete in 
relation to its own work, incomplete and dependent on the other 
for the complete work of government.

The division of power is not between a NATIONAL government and 
State governments, but between a GENERAL government and 
particular governments.  The General government, inasmuch as it 
extends to matters common to all the States, is usually called 
the Government of the United States, and sometimes the Federal 
255
government, to distinguish it from the particular or State 
governments, but without strict propriety; for the government of 
the United States, or the Federal government, means, in 
strictness, both the General government and the particular 
Governments, since neither is in itself the complete government 
of the country.  The General government has authority within 
each of the States, and each of the State governments has 
authority in the Union.  The line between the Union and the 
States severally, is not precisely the line between the General 
government and the particular governments.  As, for instance, 
the General government lays direct taxes on the people of the 
States, and collects internal revenue within them; and the 
citizens of a particular State, and none others, are electors of 
President and Vice-President of the United States, and 
representatives in the lower house of Congress, while senators 
in Congress are elected by the State legislatures themselves.

The line that distinguishes the two governments is that which 
distinguishes the general relations and interests from the 
particular relations and interests of the people of the United 
States.  These general relations and interests are placed under 
the General government, which, because its jurisdiction is 
coextensive with the
256
                     Union, is called the Government of the 
United States; the particular relations and interests are placed 
under particular governments, which, because their jurisdiction 
is only coextensive, with the States respectively, are called 
State governments.  The General government governs supremely all 
the people of the United States and Territories belonging to the 
Union, in all their general relations and interests, or 
relations and interests common alike to them all; the particular 
or State government governs supremely the people of a particular 
State, as Massachusetts, New York, or New Jersey, in all that 
pertains to their particular or private rights, relations, and 
interests.  The powers of each are equally sovereign, and 
neither are derived from the other.  The State governments are 
not subordinate to the General government, nor the General 
government to the State governments.  They are co-ordinate 
governments, each standing on the same level, and deriving its 
powers from the same sovereign authority.  In their respective 
spheres neither yields to the other.  In relation to the matters 
within its jurisdiction, each government is independent and 
supreme in regard of the other, and subject only to the 
convention.

257
The powers of the General government are the power--

To lay and collect taxes, duties, imposts, and excises, to pay 
the debts and provide for the general welfare of the United 
States; to borrow money on the credit of the United States; to 
regulate commerce with foreign nations, among the several 
States, and with the Indian tribes; to establish a uniform rule 
of naturalization, and uniform laws on the subject of 
bankruptcies throughout the United States; to coin money and 
regulate the value thereof, and fix the standard of weights and 
measures; to provide for the punishment of counterfeiting the 
securities and current coin of the United States; to establish 
post-offices and post-roads; to promote the progress of science 
and of the useful arts, by securing for limited times to authors 
and inventors the exclusive right to their respective writings 
and discoveries; to define and punish piracies and felonies 
committed on the high seas, and offences against the law of 
nations; to declare war, grant letters of marque and reprisal, 
and make rules concerning captures on land and water; to raise 
and support armies; to provide and maintain a navy; to make 
rules for the government of the land and naval forces; to 
provide for calling forth the militia to 
258
                                         execute the laws of the 
Union, suppress insurrections, and repel invasions; to provide 
for organizing, arming, and disciplining the militia, and of 
governing such part of them as may be employed in the service of 
the United States; to exercise exclusive legislation in all 
cases whatsoever over such district, not exceeding ten miles 
square, as may by cession of particular States and the 
acceptance of Congress, become the seat of the government of the 
United States, and to exercise a like authority over all places 
purchased by the consent of the legislature of the State in 
which the same shall be, for the erection of forts, magazines, 
arsenals, dock-yards, and other needful buildings; and to make 
all laws which shall be necessary and proper for carrying into 
execution the foregoing powers, and all other powers vested by 
this constitution in the government of the United States, or in 
any department or office thereof.

In addition to these, the General government is clothed with the 
treaty-making power, and the whole charge of the foreign 
relations of the country; with power to admit new States into 
the Union; to dispose of and make all needful rules and 
regulations concerning the territory and all other property 
belonging to the United States; to declare, with certain 
restrictions, the punishment
259
                             of treason, the constitution itself 
defining what is treason against the United States; and to 
propose, or to call, on the application of the legislatures of 
two-thirds of all the states, a convention for proposing 
amendments to this constitution; and is vested with supreme 
judicial power, original or appellate, in all cases of law and 
equity arising under this constitution, the laws of the United 
States, and treaties made or to be made under their authority, 
in all cases affecting ambassadors, other public ministers, and 
consuls, in all cases of admiralty and maritime jurisdiction, in 
all controversies to which the United States shall be a party, 
all controversies between two or more States, between a State 
and citizens of another State, between citizens of different 
States, between citizens of the same State claiming lands under 
grants of different States, and between a State or the citizens 
thereof and foreign states, citizens, or subjects.

These, with what is incidental to them, and what is necessary 
and proper to carry them into effect, are all the positive 
powers with which the convention vests the General government, 
or government of the United States, as distinguished from the 
governments of the particular States; and these, with the 
exception of what relates to the district in which it has
260
                                                          its 
seat, and places of forts, magazines, &c., are of a general 
nature, and restricted to the common relations and interests of 
the people, or at least to interests and relations which extend 
beyond the limits of a particular State.  They are all powers 
that regard matters which extend beyond not only the individual 
citizen, but the individual State, and affect alike the 
relations and interests of all the States, or matters which 
cannot be disposed of by a State government without the exercise 
of extra-territorial jurisdiction.  They give the government no 
jurisdiction of questions which affect individuals or citizens 
only in their private and domestic relations which lie wholly 
within a particular State.  The General government does not 
legislate concerning private rights, whether of persons or 
things, the tenure of real estate, marriage, dower, inheritance, 
wills, the transferrence or transmission of property, real or 
personal; it can charter no private corporations, out of the 
District of Columbia, for business, literary, scientific, or 
eleemosynary purposes, establish no schools, found no colleges 
or universities, and promote science and the useful arts only by 
securing to authors and inventors for a time the exclusive right 
to their writings and discoveries.  The United States Bank was 
man-
261
   ifestly unconstitutional, as probably are the present 
so-called national banks.  The United States Bank was a private 
or particular corporation, and the present national banks are 
only corporations of the same sort, though organized under a 
general law.  The pretence that they are established to supply a 
national currency, does not save their constitutionality, for 
the convention has not given the General government the power 
nor imposed on it the duty of furnishing a national currency.  
To coin money, and regulate the value thereof, is something very 
different from authorizing private companies to issue bank 
notes, on the basis of the public stocks held as private 
property, or even on what is called a specie basis.  To claim 
the power under the general welfare clause would be a simple 
mockery of good sense.  It is no more for the general welfare 
than any other successful private business.  The private welfare 
of each is, no doubt, for the welfare of all, but not therefore 
is it the "general welfare," for what is private, particular in 
its nature, is not and cannot be general.  To understand by 
general welfare that which is for the individual welfare of all 
or the greater number, would be to claim for the General 
government all the powers of government, and
262
                                             to deny that very 
division of powers which is the crowning merit of the American 
system.  The general welfare, by the very force of the words 
themselves, means the common as distinguished from the private 
or individual welfare.  The system of national banks may or may 
not be a good and desirable system, but it is difficult to 
understand the constitutional power of the General government to 
establish it.

On the ground that its powers are general, not particular, the 
General government has no power to lay a protective tariff.  It 
can lay a tariff for revenue, not for protection of home 
manufactures or home industry; for the interests fostered, even 
though indirectly advantageous to the whole people, are in their 
nature private or particular, not general interests, and chiefly 
interests of private corporations and capitalists.  Their 
incidental or even consequential effects do not change their 
direct and essential nature.  So with domestic slavery.  Slavery 
comes under the head of private rights, whether regarded on the 
side of the master or on the side of the slave.  The right of a 
citizen to hold a slave, if a right at all, is the private right 
of property, and the right of the slave to his freedom is a 
private and personal right, and neither is placed under the 
safeguard of the General government,
263
                                     which has nowhere, unless 
in the District of Columbia and the places over which it has 
exclusive legislative power in all cases whatsoever, either the 
right to establish it or to abolish it, except perhaps under the 
war power, as a military necessity, an indemnity for the past, 
or a security for the future.

This applies to what are called Territories as well as to the 
States.  The right of the government to govern the Territories 
in regard to private and particular rights and interests, is 
derived from no express grant of power, and is held only ex 
necessitate--the United States owning the domain, and there 
being no other authority competent to govern them.  But, as in 
the case of all powers held ex necessitate, the power is 
restricted to the absolute necessity in the case.  What are 
called Territorial governments, to distinguish them from the 
State governments, are only provisional governments, and can 
touch private rights and interests no further than is necessary 
to preserve order and prepare the way for the organization and 
installation of a regular State government.  Till then the law 
governing private rights is the law that was in force, if any 
such there was, when the territory became by purchase, by
264
conquest, or by treaty, attached to the domain of the United 
States.

Hence the Supreme Court declared unconstitutional the ordinance 
of l787, prohibiting slavery in what was called the territory of 
the Northwest, and the so-called Missouri Compromise, 
prohibiting slavery north of the parallel 36' 30'.  The Wilmot 
proviso was for the same reason unconstitutional.  The General 
government never had and has not any power to exclude slavery 
from the Territories, any more than to abolish it in the States.  
But slavery being a local institution, sustained neither by the 
law of nature nor the law of nations, no citizen migrating from 
a slave State could carry his slaves with him, and hold them as 
slaves in the Territory.  Rights enacted by local law are rights 
only in that locality, and slaves carried by their masters into 
a slave State even, are free, unless the State into which they 
are carried enacts to the contrary.  The only persons that could 
be held as slaves in a Territory would be those who were slaves 
or the children of those who were slaves in the Territory when 
it passed to the United States.  The whole controversy on, 
slavery in the Territories, and which culminated in the civil 
war, was wholly unnecessary, and never could have 
265
                                                  occurred had 
the constitution been properly understood and adhered to by both 
sides.  True, Congress could not exclude slavery from the 
Territory, but neither could citizens migrating to them hold 
slaves in them; and so really slavery was virtually excluded, 
for the inhabitants in nearly all of them, not emigrants from 
the States after the cession to the United States, were too few 
to be counted.

The General government has power to establish a uniform rule of 
naturalization, to which all the States must conform, and it was 
very proper that it should have this power, so as to prevent one 
State from gaining by its naturalization laws an undue advantage 
over another; but the General government has itself no power to 
naturalize a single foreigner, or in any case to say who shall 
or who shall not be citizens, either of a State or of the United 
States, or to declare who may or may not be electors even of its 
own officers.  The convention ordains that members of the house 
of representatives shall be chosen by electors who have the 
qualifications requisite for electors of the most numerous 
branch of the State legislature, but the State determines these 
qualifications, and who do or do not possess them; that the 
senators shall be chosen by the State legislatures, and 
266
                                                   that the 
electors of President and Vice-President shall be appointed in 
such manner as the respective State legislatures may direct.  The 
whole question of citizenship, what shall or shall not be the 
qualifications of electors, who shall or shall not be freemen, is 
reserved to the, States, as coming under the head of personal or 
private rights and franchises.  In practice, the exact line of 
demarcation may not always have been strictly observed either by 
the General government or by the State governments; but a 
careful study of the constitution cannot fail to show that the 
division of powers is the division or distinction between the 
public and general relations and interests, rights and duties of 
the people, and their private and particular relations and 
interests, rights and duties.  As these two classes of relations 
and interests, rights and duties, though distinguishable, are 
really inseparable in nature, it follows that the two governments 
are essential to the existence of a complete government, or to 
the existence of a real government in its plenitude and 
integrity.  Left to either alone, the people would have only an 
incomplete, an initial, or inchoate government.  The General 
government is the complement of the State governments, and the 
267
State governments are the complement of the General government.

The consideration of the powers denied by the convention to the 
General government and to the State governments respectively, 
will lead to the same conclusion.  To the General government is 
denied expressly or by necessary implication all jurisdiction in 
matters of private rights and interests, and to the State 
government is denied all jurisdiction in right, or interests 
which extend, as has been said, beyond the boundaries of the 
State.  "No State shall enter into any treaty, alliance, or 
confederation; grant letters of marque and reprisal; coin money, 
emit bills of credit, make any thing but gold and silver coin a 
tender in the payment of debts; pass any bill of attainder, ex 
post facto law, or law impairing the obligation of contracts, or 
grant any title of nobility.  No State shall, without the 
consent of Congress, lay any imposts or duties on imports or 
exports, except what may be absolutely necessary for executing 
its inspection laws and the net produce of all duties and 
imposts laid by any State on imports and exports shall be for the 
use of the treasury of the United States, and all such laws 
shall be subject to the revision and control of Congress.  No 
State shall, with-
268
                 out the consent of Congress, lay any duty of 
tonnage, keep troops or ships-of-war in time of peace, enter into 
any agreement or compact with another State or with a foreign 
power, or engage in war, unless actually invaded, or in such 
imminent danger as will not admit of delay."

The powers denied to the States in some matters which are rather 
private and particular, such as bills of attainder, ex post 
facto laws, laws impairing the obligation of contracts, granting 
titles of nobility, are denied equally to the General government.  
There is evidently a profound logic in the constitution, and 
there is not a single provision in it that is arbitrary, or 
anomalous, or that does not harmonize dialectically with the 
whole, and with the real constitution of the American people.  At 
first sight the reservation to the State of the appointment of 
the officers of the militia might seem an anomaly; but as the 
whole subject of internal police belongs to the State, it should 
have some military force at its command.  The subject of 
bankruptcies, also, might seem to be more properly within the 
province of the State, and so it would be if commerce between the 
several States had not been placed under Congress, or if trade 
were confined to the citizens
269
                              of the State and within its 
boundaries; but as such is not the case, it was necessary to 
place it under the General government, in order that laws on the 
subject might be uniform throughout the Union, and that the 
citizens of all the States, and foreigners trading with them, 
should be placed on an equal footing, and have the same remedies.  
The subject follows naturally in the train of commerce, for 
bankruptcies, as understood at the time, were confined to the 
mercantile class, bankers, and brokers; and since the regulation 
of commerce, foreign and inter-state, was to be placed under the 
sole charge of the General government, it was necessary that 
bankruptcy should be included.  The subject of patents is placed 
under the General government, though the patent is a private 
right, because it was the will of the convention that the patent 
should be good in all the States, as affording more encouragement 
to science and the useful arts than if good only within a single 
State, or if the power were left to each State to recognize or 
not patents granted by another.  The right created, though 
private in its nature, is Yet general or common to all the States 
in its enjoyment or exercise.

The division of the powers of government between a General 
government and particular
270
                          governments, rendered possible and 
practicable by the original constitution of the people 
themselves, as one people existing and acting through State 
organizations, is the American method of guarding against the 
undue centralism to which Roman imperialism inevitably tends; 
and it is far simpler and more effective than any of the 
European systems of mixed governments, which seek their end by 
organizing an antagonism of interests or classes.  The American 
method demands no such antagonism, no neutralizing of one social 
force by another, but avails itself of all the forces of society, 
organizes them dialectically, not antagonistically, and thus 
protects with, equal efficiency both public authority and 
private rights.  The General government can never oppress the 
people as individuals, or abridge their private rights or 
personal freedom and independence, because these are not within 
its jurisdiction, but are placed in charge, within each State, 
of the State government, which, within its sphere, governs as 
supremely as the General government: the State governments 
cannot weaken the public authority of the nation or oppress the 
people in their general rights and interests, for these are 
withdrawn from State jurisdiction, and placed under charge of a 
Gen-
271
eral government, which, in its sphere, governs as supremely as 
the State government.  There is no resort to a system of checks 
and balances; there is no restraint on power, and no systematic 
distrust of power, but simply a division of powers between two 
co-ordinate governments, distinct but inseparable, moving in 
distinct spheres, but in the same direction, or to a common end.  
The system is no invention of man, is no creation of the 
convention, but is given us by Providence in the living 
constitution of the American people.  The merit of the statesmen 
of 1787 is that they did not destroy or deface the work of 
Providence, but accepted it, and organized the government in 
harmony with the real orders the real elements given them.  They 
suffered themselves in all their positive substantial work to be 
governed by reality, not by theories and speculations.  In this 
they proved themselves statesmen, and their work survives; and 
the republic, laugh as sciolists may, is, for the present and 
future, the model republic--as much so as was Rome in her day; 
and it is not simply national pride nor American self-conceit 
that pronounces its establishment the beginning of a new and 
more advanced order of civilization; such is really the fact.

The only apparently weak point in the sys-
272
                                         tem is in the 
particular States themselves.  Feudalism protected the feudal 
aristocracy effectively for a time against both the king and the 
people, but left the king and the, people without protection 
against the aristocracy, and hence it fell.  It was not adequate 
to the wants of civil society, did not harmonize all social 
elements, and protect all social and individual rights and 
interests, and therefore could not but fail.  The General 
government takes care of public authority and rights; the State 
protects private rights and personal freedom as against the 
General government: but what protects the citizens in their 
private rights, their personal freedom and independence, against 
the particular State government?  Universal suffrage, answers 
the democrat.  Armed with the ballot, more powerful than the 
sword, each citizen is able to protect himself.  But this is 
theory, not reality.  If it were true, the division of the 
powers of government between two co-ordinate, governments would 
be of no practical importance.  Experience does not sustain the 
theory, and the power of the ballot to protect the individual 
may be rendered ineffective by the tyranny of party.  Experience 
proves that the ballot is far less effective in securing the 
freedom and independence of the individual citizen than is
273
commonly pretended.  The ballot of an isolated individual counts 
for nothing.  The individual, though armed with the ballot, is 
as powerless, if he stands alone, as if he had it not.  To 
render it of any avail he must associate himself with a party, 
and look for his success in the success of his party; and to 
secure the success of his party, he must give up to it his own 
private convictions and free will.  In practice, individuals are 
nothing individually, and parties are every thing.  Even the 
suppression of the late rebellion, and the support of the 
Administration in doing it, was made a party question, and the 
government found the leaders of the party opposed to the 
Republican party an obstacle hardly less difficult to surmount 
than the chiefs of the armies of the so-called Confederate 
States.

Parties are formed, one hardly knows how, and controlled, no one 
knows by whom; but usually by demagogues, men who have some 
private or personal purposes, for which they wish, through party 
to use the government.  Parties have no conscience, no 
responsibility, and their very reason of being is, the 
usurpation and concentration of power.  The real practical 
tendency of universal suffrage is to democratic, instead of an 
imperial, centralism.
274
                       What is to guard against this centralism?  
Not universal suffrage, for that tends to create it;, and if the 
government is left to it, the government becomes practically the 
will of an ever shifting and irresponsible majority.  Is the 
remedy in written or paper constitutions?  Party can break 
through them, and by making the judges elective by party, for 
short terms, and re-eligible, can do so with impunity.  In 
several of the States, the dominant majority have gained the 
power to govern at will, without any let or hindrance.  Besides, 
constitutions can be altered, and have been altered, very nearly 
at the will of the majority.  No mere paper constitutions are 
any protection against the usurpations of party, for party will 
always grasp all the power it can.

Yet the evil is not so great as it seems, for in most of the 
States the principle of division of powers is carried into the 
bosom of the State itself; in some States further than in 
others, but in all it obtains to some extent.  In what are 
called the New England States, the best governed portion of the 
Union, each town is a corporation, having important powers and 
the charge of all purely local matters--chooses its own 
officers, manages its own finances, takes charge of its own 
poor, of its own roads
275
                       and bridges, and of the education of its 
own children.  Between these corporations and the State 
government are the counties, that take charge of another class 
of interests, more general than those under the charge of the 
town, but less general than those of the State.  In the great 
central and Northwestern States the same system obtains, though 
less completely carried out.  In the Southern and Southwestern 
States, the town corporations hardly exist, and the rights and 
interests of the poorer classes of persons have been less well 
protected in them than in the Northern and Eastern States.  But 
with the abolition of slavery, and the lessening of the 
influence of the wealthy slaveholding class, with the return of 
peace and the revival of agricultural, industrial, and 
commercial prosperity, the New England system, in its main 
features, is pretty sure to be gradually introduced, or 
developed, and the division of powers in the State to be as 
effectively and as systematically carried out as it is between 
the General government and the particular or State governments.  
So, though universal suffrage, good as far as it goes, is not 
alone sufficient, the division of powers affords with it a not 
inadequate protection.

No government, whose workings are intrusted
276
                                            to men, ever is or 
can be practically perfect--secure all good, and guard against 
all evil.  In all human governments there will be defects and 
abuses, and he is no wise man who expects perfection from 
imperfection.  But the American constitution, taken as a whole, 
and in all its parts, is the least imperfect that has ever 
existed, and under it individual rights, personal freedom and 
independence, as well as public authority or society, are better 
protected than under any other; and as the few barbaric elements 
retained from the feudal ages are eliminated, the standard of 
education elevated, and the whole population Americanized, 
moulded by and to the American system, it will be found to 
effect all the good, with as little of the evil, as can be 
reasonably expected from any possible civil government or 
political constitution of society.




277
CHAPTER XI.

SECESSION.


The doctrine that a State has a right to secede and carry with it 
its population and domain, has been effectually put down, and the 
unity and integrity of the United States as a sovereign nation 
have been effectively asserted on the battle-field; but the 
secessionists, though disposed to submit to superior force, and 
demean themselves henceforth as loyal citizens, most likely hold 
as firmly to the doctrine as before finding themselves unable to 
reduce it to practice, and the Union victory will remain 
incomplete till they are convinced in their understandings that 
the Union has the better reason as well as the superior military 
resources.  The nation has conquered their bodies, but it is 
hardly less important for our statesmen to conquer their minds 
and win their hearts.

The right of secession is not claimed as a revolutionary right, 
or even as a conventional right.  The secessionists disclaim 
revolutionary
278
              principles, and hold that the right of secession is 
anterior to the convention, a right which the convention could 
neither give, nor take away, because inherent in the very 
conception of a sovereign State.  Secession is simply the repeal 
by the State of the act of accession to the Union; and as that 
act was a free, voluntary act of the State, she must always be 
free to repeal it.  The Union is a copartnership; a State in the 
Union is simply a member of the firm, and has the right to 
withdraw when it judges it for its interest to do so.  There is 
no power in a firm to compel a copartner to remain a member any 
longer than be pleases.  He is undoubtedly holden for the 
obligations contracted by the firm while he remains a member; but 
for none contracted after he has withdrawn and given due notice 
thereof.

So of a sovereign State in the Union.  The Union itself, apart 
from the sovereign States that compose it, is a mere abstraction, 
a nullity, and binds nobody.  All its substance and vitality are 
in the agreement by which the States constitute themselves a firm 
or copartnership, for certain specific purposes, and for which 
they open an office and establish an agency under express 
instructions for the management of the general affairs of the 
firm.  The State is held
279
                         jointly and severally for all the legal 
obligations of the Union, contracted while she is in it but no 
further; and is free to withdraw when she pleases, precisely as 
an individual may withdraw from an ordinary business firm. The 
remaining copartners have no right of compulsion or coercion 
against the seceding member, for he, saving the obligations 
already contracted, is as free to withdraw as they are to remain.

The population is fixed to the domain and goes with it; the 
domain is attached to the State, and secedes in the secession of 
the State.  Secession, then, carries the entire State government, 
people, and domain out of the Union, and restores ipso facto the 
State to its original position of a sovereign State, foreign to 
the United States.  Being an independent sovereign State, she may 
enter into a new confederacy, form a new copartnership, or merge 
herself in some other foreign state, as she judges proper or 
finds opportunity.  The States that seceded formed among 
themselves a new confederacy, more to their mind than the one 
formed in 1787, as they had a perfect right to do, and in the war 
just ended they were not rebels nor revolutionists, but a people 
fighting for the right of self-government, loyal citizens and 
true patriots de-
280
                fending the independence and inviolability of 
their country against foreign invaders.  They are to be honored 
for their loyalty and patriotism, and not branded as rebels and 
punished as traitors.

This is the secession argument, which rests on no assumption of 
revolutionary principles or abstract rights of man, and on no 
allegation of real or imaginary wrongs received from the Union, 
but simply on the original and inherent rights of the several 
States as independent sovereign States.  The argument is 
conclusive, and the defence complete, if the Union is only a firm 
or copartnership, and the sovereignty vests in the States 
severally.  The refutation of the secessionists is in the facts 
adduced that disprove the theory of State sovereignty, and prove 
that the sovereignty vests not in the States severally, but in 
the States united, or that the Union is sovereign, and not the 
States individually.  The Union is not a firm, a copartnership, 
nor an artificial or conventional union, but a real, living, 
constitutional union, founded in the original and indissoluble 
unity of the American people, as one sovereign people.  There is, 
indeed, no such people, if we abstract the States, but there are 
no States if we abstract this sovereign people or the Union.  
There is
281
         no Union without the States, and there are no States 
without the Union.  The people are born States, and the States 
are born United States.  The Union and the States are 
simultaneous, born together, and enter alike into the original 
and essential constitution of the American state.  This the facts 
and reasonings adduced fully establish.

But this one sovereign people that exists only as organized into 
States, does not necessarily include the whole population or 
territory included within the jurisdiction of the United States.  
It is restricted to the people and territory or domain organized 
into States in the Union, as in ancient Rome the ruling people 
were restricted to the tenants of the sacred territory, which had 
been surveyed, and its boundaries marked by the god Terminus, and 
which by no means included all the territory held by the city, 
and of which she was both the private proprietor and the public 
sovereign.  The city had vast possessions acquired by 
confiscation, by purchase, by treaty, or by conquest, and in 
reference to which her celebrated agrarian laws were enacted, and 
which have their counterpart in our homestead and kindred laws.  
In this class of territory, of which the city was the private 
owner, was the territory of all the
282
                                    Roman provinces, which was 
held to be only leased to its occupants, who were often 
dispossessed, and their lands given as a recompense by the consul 
or imperator to his disbanded legionaries.  The provincials were 
subjects of Rome, but formed no part of the Roman people, and had 
no share in the political power of the state, till at a late 
period the privileges of Roman citizens were extended to them, 
and the Roman people became coextensive with the Roman empire.  
So the United States have held and still hold large territorial 
possessions, acquired by the acknowledgment of their independence 
by Great Britain, the former sovereign, the cession of particular 
states, and purchase from France, Spain, and Mexico.  Till 
erected into States and admitted into the Union, this territory, 
with its population, though subject to the United States, makes 
no part of the political or sovereign territory and people of the 
United States.  It is under the Union, not in it, as is indicated 
by the phrase admitting into the Union--a legal phrase, since the 
constitution ordains that "new States may be admitted by the 
Congress into this Union."

There can be no secession that separates a State from the 
national domain, and withdraws it from the territorial 
sovereignty or jurisdic-
283
                       tion of the United States; yet what 
hinders a State from going out of the Union in the sense that it 
comes into it, and thus ceasing to belong to the political people 
of the United States?

If the view of the constitution taken in the preceding chapters 
be correct, and certainly no facts tend to disprove it, the 
accession of a Territory as a State in the Union is a free act of 
the territorial people.  The Territory cannot organize and apply 
for admission as a State, without what is called an "enabling act" 
of Congress or its equivalent; but that act is permissive, not 
mandatory, and nothing obliges the Territory to organize under it 
and apply for admission.  It may do so or not, as it chooses.  
What, then, hinders the State once in the Union from going out or 
returning to its former condition of territory subject to the 
Union?  The original States did not need to come in under an 
enabling act, for they were born States in the Union, and were 
never territory outside of the Union and subject to it.  But they 
and the new States, adopted or naturalized States, once in the 
Union, stand on a footing of perfect equality, and the original 
States are no more and no less bound than they to remain States 
in the Union.  The ratification of the constitution by the 
original States was a
284
                      free act, as much so as the accession of a 
new State formed from territory subject to the Union is a free 
act, and a free act is an act which one is free to do or not to 
do, as he pleases.  What a State is free to do or not to do, it 
is free to undo, if it chooses.  There is nothing in either the 
State constitution or in that of the United States that forbids 
it.

This is denied.  The population and domain are inseparable in the 
State; and if the State could take itself out of the Union, it 
would take them out, and be ipso facto a sovereign State foreign 
to the Union.  It would take the domain and the population out of 
the Union, it is conceded and even maintained, but not therefore 
would it take them out of the jurisdiction of the Union, or would 
they exist as a State foreign to the Union; for population and 
territory may coexist, as Dacota, Colorado, or New Mexico, out of 
the Union, and yet be subject to the Union, or within the 
jurisdiction of the United States.

But the Union is formed by the surrender by each of the States of 
its individual sovereignty, and each State by its admission into 
the Union surrenders its individual sovereignty, or binds itself 
by a constitutional compact to merge its individual sovereignty 
in that of
285
           the whole.  It then cannot cease to be a State in the 
Union without breach of contract.  Having surrendered its 
sovereignty to the Union, or bound itself by the constitution to 
exercise its original sovereignty only as one of the United States, 
it can unmake itself of its state character, only by consent of 
the United States, or by a successful revolution.  It is by 
virtue of this fact that secession is rebellion against the 
United States, and that the General government, as representing 
the Union, has the right and the duty to suppress it by all the 
forces at its command.

There can be no rebellion where there is no allegiance.  The 
States in the Union cannot owe allegiance to the Union, for they 
are it, and for any one to go out of it is no more an act of 
rebellion than it is for a king to abdicate his throne.  The 
Union is not formed by the surrender to it by the several States 
of their respective individual sovereignty.  Such surrender 
could, as we have seen, form only an alliance, or a 
confederation, not one sovereign people; and from an alliance, or 
confederation, the ally or confederate has, saving its faith, the 
inherent right to secede.  The argument assumes that the States 
were originally each in its individuality a sovereign state, but by 
the con-
286
       vention which framed the constitution, each surrendered 
its sovereignty to the whole, and thus several sovereign states 
became one sovereign political people, governing in general 
matters through the General government, and in particular matters 
through particular or State governments.  This is Mr. Madison's 
theory, and also Mr. Webster's; but it has been refuted in the 
refutation of the theory that makes government originate in 
compact.  A sovereign state can, undoubtedly, surrender its 
sovereignty, but can surrender it only to something or somebody 
that really exists; for to Surrender to no one or to nothing is, 
as has been shown, the same thing as not to surrender at all; and 
the Union, being formed only by the surrender, is nothing prior 
to it, or till after it is made, and therefore can be no 
recipient of the surrender.

Besides, the theory is the reverse of the fact.  The State does 
not surrender or part with its sovereignty by coming into the 
Union, but acquires by it all the rights it holds as a State.  
Between the original States and the new States there is a 
difference of mode by which they become States in the Union, but 
none in their powers, or the tenure by which they hold them.  The 
process by which new States are
287
                                actually formed and admitted into 
the Union, discloses at once what it is that is gained or lost by 
admission.  The domain and population, before the organization of 
the Territory into one of the United States, are subject to the 
United States, inseparably attached to the domain of the Union, 
and under its sovereignty.  The Territory so remains, organized 
or unorganized, under a Territorial Government created by 
Congress.  Congress, by an enabling act, permits it to organize 
as a State, to call a convention to form a State constitution, to 
elect under it, in such way as the convention ordains, State 
officers, a State legislature, and, in the way prescribed by the 
Constitution of the United States, senators and representatives 
in Congress.  Here is a complete organization as a State, yet, 
though called a State, it is no State at all, and is simply 
territory, without a single particle of political power.  To be a 
State it must be recognized and admitted by Congress as a State 
in the Union, and when so recognized and admitted it possesses, 
in union with the other United States, supreme political 
sovereignty, jointly in all general matters, and individually in 
all private and particular matters.

The Territory gives up no sovereign powers
288
                                           by coming into the 
Union, for before it came into the Union it had no sovereignty, 
no political rights at all.  All the rights and powers it holds 
are held by the simple fact that it has become a State in the 
Union.  This is as true of the original States as of the new 
States; for it has been shown in the chapter on The United States, 
that the original British sovereignty under which the colonies 
were organized and existed passed, on the fact of independence, 
to the States United, and not to the States severally.  Hence if 
nine States had ratified the constitution, and the other four had 
stood out, and refused to do it, which was within their 
competency, they would not have been independent sovereign 
States, outside of the Union, but Territories under the Union.

Texas forms the only exception to the rule that the States have 
never been independent of the Union.  All the other new States 
have been formed from territory subject to the Union.  This is 
true of all the States formed out of the Territory of the 
Northwest, and out of the domain ceded by France, Spain, and 
Mexico to the United States.  All these cessions were held by the 
United States as territory immediately subject to the Union, 
before being erected into States; and by far the larger
289
                                                        part is 
so held even yet.  But Texas was an independent foreign state, 
and was annexed as a State without having been first subjected as 
territory to the United States.  It of course lost by annexation 
its separate sovereignty.  But this annexation was held by many 
to be unconstitutional; it was made when the State sovereignty 
theory had gained possession of the Government, and was annexed 
as a State instead of being admitted as a State formed from 
territory belonging to the United States, for the very purpose of 
committing the nation to that theory.  Its annexation was the 
prologue, as the Mexican war was the first act in the secession 
drama, and as the epilogue is the suppression of the rebellion on 
Texan soil.  Texas is an exceptional case, and forms no 
precedent, and cannot be adduced as invalidating the general 
rule.  Omitting Texas, the simple fact is, the States acquire all 
their sovereign powers by being States in the Union, instead of 
losing or surrendering them.

Our American statesmen have overlooked or not duly weighed the 
facts in the case, because, holding the origin of government in 
compact, they felt no need of looking back of the constitution to 
find the basis of that unity of the American people which they 
assert.  Neither Mr. Madi-
190
                         son nor Mr. Webster felt any difficulty 
in asserting it as created by the convention of 1787, or in 
conceding the sovereignty of the States prior to the Union, and 
denying its existence after the ratification of the constitution.  
If it were not that they held that the State originates in 
convention or the social compact, there would be unpardonable 
presumption on the part of the present writer in venturing to 
hazard an assertion contrary to theirs.  But, if their theory was 
unsound, their practical doctrine was not; for they maintained 
that the American people are one sovereign people, and Mr. Quincy 
Adams, an authority inferior to neither, maintained that they 
were always one people, and that the States hold from the Union, 
not the Union from the States.  The States without the Union 
cease to exist as political communities: the Union without the 
States ceases to be a Union, and becomes a vast centralized and 
consolidated state, ready to lapse from a civilized into a 
barbaric, from a republican to a despotic nation.

The State, under the American system, as distinguished from 
Territory, is not in the domain and population fixed to it, nor 
yet in its exterior organization, but solely in the political 
powers, rights, and franchises which it
291
                                        holds from the United 
States, or as one of the United States.  As these are rights, not 
obligations, the State may resign or abdicate them and cease to 
be a State, on the same principle that any man may abdicate or 
forego his rights.  In doing so, the State breaks no oath of 
allegiance, fails to fulfil no obligation she contracted as a 
State: she simply forgoes her political rights and franchises.  
So far, then, secession is possible, feasible, and not 
unconstitutional or unlawful.  But it is, as Mr. Sumner and 
others have maintained, simply State suicide.  Nothing hinders a 
State from committing suicide, if she chooses, any more than 
there was something which compelled the Territory to become a 
State in the Union against its will.

It is objected to, this conclusion that the States were, prior to 
the Union, independent sovereign States, and secession would not 
destroy the State, but restore it to its original sovereignty and 
independence, as the secessionists maintain.  Certainly, if the 
States were, Prior to the Union, sovereign States; but this is 
precisely what has been denied and disproved; for prior to the 
Union there were no States.  Secession restores, or reduces, 
rather, the State to the condition it was in before its admission 
into the Union; but that condition
292
                                   is that of Territory, or a 
Territory subject to the United States, and not that of an 
independent sovereign state.  The State holds all its political 
rights and powers in the Union from the Union, and has none out 
of it, or in the condition in which its population and domain 
were before being a State in the Union.

State suicide, it has been urged, releases its population and 
territory from their allegiance to the Union, and as there is no 
rebellion where there is no allegiance, resistance by its 
population and territory to the Union, even war against the 
Union, would not be rebellion, but the simple assertion of 
popular sovereignty.  This is only the same objection in another 
form.  The lapse of the State releases the population and 
territory from no allegiance to the Union; for their allegiance 
to the Union was not contracted by their becoming a State, and 
they have never in their State character owed allegiance to the 
United States.  A State owes no allegiance to the United States, 
for it is one of them, and is jointly sovereign.  The relation 
between the United States and the State is not the relation of 
suzerain and liegeman or vassal.  A State owes no allegiance, for 
it is not subject to the Union; it is never in their State 
capacity that its population and territory do or
293
                                                 can rebel.  
Hence, the Government has steadily denied that, in the late 
rebellion, any State as such rebelled.

But as a State cannot rebel, no State can go out of the Union; 
and therefore no State in the late rebellion has seceded, and the 
States that passed secession ordinances are and all along have 
been States in the Union.  No State can rebel, but it does not 
follow therefrom that no State can secede or cease to exist as a 
State: it only follows that secession, in the sense of State 
suicide, or the abdication by the State of its political rights 
and powers, is not rebellion.  Nor does it follow from the fact 
that no State has rebelled, that no State has ceased to be a 
State; or that the States that passed secession ordinances have 
been all along States in the Union.

The secession ordinances were illegal, unconstitutional, not 
within the competency of the State, and	therefore null and void 
from the beginning.  Unconstitutional, illegal, and not within 
the competency of the State, so far as intended to alienate any 
portion of the national domain and population thereto annexed, 
they certainly were, and so far were void and of no effect; but 
so far as intended to take the State simply as a State out of the 
Union, they were
294
                 within the competency of the State, were not 
illegal or unconstitutional, and therefore not null and void.  
Acts unconstitutional in some parts and constitutional in others 
are not wholly void.  The unconstitutionality vitiates only the 
unconstitutional parts; the others are valid, are law, and 
recognized and enforced as such by the courts.

The secession ordinances are void, because they were never passed 
by the people of the State, but by a faction that overawed them 
and usurped the authority of the State.  This argument implies 
that, if a secession ordinance is passed by the people proper of 
the State, it is valid; which is more than they who urge it 
against the State suicide doctrine are prepared to concede.  But 
the secession ordinances were in every instance passed by the 
people of the State in convention legally assembled, therefore by 
them in their highest State capacity--in the same capacity in 
which they ordain and ratify the State constitution itself; and 
in nearly all the States they were in addition ratified and 
confirmed, if the facts have been correctly reported, by a 
genuine plebiscitum, or direct vote of the people.  In all cases 
they were adopted by a decided majority of the political people 
of the State, and after their adoption they were
295
                                                 acquiesced in 
and indeed actively supported by very nearly the whole people.  
The people of the States adopting the secession ordinances were 
far more unanimous in supporting secession than the people of the 
other States were in sustaining the Government in its efforts to
suppress the rebellion by coercive measures.  It will not do, 
then, to ascribe the secession ordinances to a faction.  The 
people are never a faction, nor is a faction ever the majority.

There has been a disposition at the North, encouraged by the few 
Union men at the South, to regard secession as the work of a few 
ambitious and unprincipled leaders, who, by their threats, their 
violence, and their overbearing manner, forced the mass of the 
people of their respective States into secession against their 
convictions and their will.  No doubt there were leaders at the 
South, as there are in every great movement at the North; no 
doubt there were individuals in the seceding States that held 
secession wrong in principle, and were conscientiously attached 
to the Union; no doubt, also, there were men who adhered to the 
Union, not because they disapproved secession, but because they 
disliked the men at the head of the movement, or because they 
were keen-sighted enough to see that it could not
296
                                                  succeed, that 
the Union must be the winning side, and that by adhering to it 
they would become the great and leading men of their respective 
States, which they certainly could not be under secession.  
Others sympathized fully with what was called the Southern cause, 
held firmly the right of secession, and hated cordially the 
Yankees, but doubted either the practicability or the expediency 
of secession, and opposed it till resolved on, but, after it was 
resolved on, yielded to none in their earnest support of it.  
These last comprised the immense majority of those who voted 
against secession.  Never could those called the Southern leaders 
have carried the secession ordinances, never could they have 
carried on the war with the vigor and determination, and with 
such formidable armies as they collected and armed for four 
years, making at times the destiny of the Union well nigh 
doubtful, if they had not had the Southern heart with them, if 
they had not been most heartily supported by the overwhelming 
mass of the people.  They led a popular, not a factious movement.

No State, it is said again, has seceded, or could secede.  The 
State is territorial, not personal, and as no State can carry its 
territory and population out of the Union, no State can
297
                                                        secede.  
Out of the jurisdiction of the Union, or alienate them from the 
sovereign or national domain, very true; but out of the Union as 
a State, with rights, powers, or franchises in the Union, not 
true.  Secession is political, not territorial.

But the State holds from the territory or domain.  The people are 
sovereign because attached to a sovereign territory, not the 
domain because held by a sovereign people, as was established by 
the analysis of the early Roman constitution.  The territory of 
the States corresponds to the sacred territory of Rome, to which 
was attached the Roman sovereignty.  That territory, once 
surveyed and consecrated, remained sacred and the ruling 
territory, and could not be divested of its sacred and governing 
character.  The portions of the territory of the United States 
once erected into States and consecrated as ruling territory can 
never be deprived, except by foreign conquest or successful 
revolution, of its sacred character and inviolable rights.

The State is territorial, not personal, and is constituted by 
public, not by private wealth, and is always respublica or 
commonwealth, in distinction from despotism or monarchy in its 
oriental sense, which is founded on private wealth, or which 
assumes that the authority to
298
                              govern, or sovereignty, is the 
private estate of the sovereign.  All power is a domain, but 
there is no domain without a dominus or lord.  In oriental 
monarchies the dominus is the monarch; in republics it is the 
public or people fixed to the soil or territory, that is, the 
people in their territorial, and not in their personal or 
genealogical relation.  The people of The United States are 
sovereign only within the territory or domain of the United 
States, and their sovereignty is a state, because fixed, 
attached, or limited to that specific territory.  It is fixed to 
the soil, not nomadic.  In barbaric nations power is nomadic and 
personal, or genealogical, confined to no locality, but attaches 
to the chief, and follows wherever he goes.  The Gothic chiefs 
hold their power by a personal title, and have the same authority 
in their tribes on the Po or the Rhone as on the banks of the 
Elbe or the Danube.  Power migrates with the chief and his 
people, and may be exercised wherever he and they find 
themselves, as a Swedish queen held when she ordered the 
execution of one of her subjects at Paris, without asking 
permission of the territorial lord.  In these nations, power is a 
personal right, or a private estate, not a state which exists 
only as attached to the domain, and, as attached to the domain,
299
exists independently of the chief or the government.  The 
distinction is between public domain and private domain.

The American system is republican, and, contrary to what some 
democratic politicians assert, the American democracy is 
territorial, not personal; not territorial because the majority 
of the people are agriculturists or landholders, but because all 
political rights, powers, or franchises are territorial.  The 
sovereign people of the United States are sovereign only within 
the territory of the United States.  The great body of the 
freemen have the elective franchise, but no one has it save in 
his State, his county, his town, his ward, his precinct.  Out of 
the election district in which he is domiciled, a citizen of the 
United States has no more right to vote than has the citizen or 
subject of a foreign state.  This explains what is meant by the 
attachment of power to the territory, and the dependence of the 
state on the domain.  The state, in republican states, exists 
only as inseparably united with the public domain; under 
feudalism, power was joined to territory or domain, but the 
domain was held as a private, not as a public domain.  All 
sovereignty rests on domain or proprietorship, and is dominion.  
The proprietor is the dominus or lord, and in
300
                                              republican states 
the lord is society, or the public, and the domain is held for 
the common or public good of all.  All political rights are held 
from society, or the dominus, and therefore it is the elective 
franchise is held from society, and is a civil right, as 
distinguished from a natural, or even a purely personal right.

As there is no domain without a lord or dominus, territory alone 
cannot possess any political rights or franchises, for it is not 
a domain.  In the American system, the dominus or lord is not the 
particular State, but the United States, and, the domain of the 
whole territory, whether erected into particular States or not, 
is in the United States alone.  The United States do not part 
with the dominion of that portion of the national domain included 
within a particular State.  The State holds the domain not 
separately but jointly, as inseparably one of the United States: 
separated, it has no dominion, is no State, and is no longer a 
joint sovereign at all, and the territory that it included falls 
into the condition of any other territory held by the United 
States not erected into one of the United States.

Lawyers, indeed, tell us that the eminent domain is in the 
particular State, and that all escheats are to the State, not to 
the United
301
           States.  All escheats of private estates, but no 
public or general escheats.  But this has nothing to do with the 
public domain.  The United States are the dominus, but they have, 
by the constitution, divided the powers of government between a 
General government and particular State governments, and ordained 
that all matters of a general nature, common to all the States, 
should be placed under the supreme control of the former, and all 
matters of a private or particular character under the supreme 
control of the latter.  The eminent domain of private estates is 
in the particular State, but the sovereign authority in the 
particular State is that of the United States expressing itself 
through the State government.  The United States, in the States 
as well as out of them, is the dominus, as the States 
respectively would soon find if they were to undertake to 
alienate any part of their domain to a foreign power, or even to 
the citizens or subjects of a foreign State, as is also evident 
from the fact that the United States, in the way prescribed by 
the constitution, may enlarge or contract at will the rights and 
powers of the States.  The mistake on this point grows out of the 
habit of restricting the action of the United States to the 
General government, and not recollecting
302
                                         that the United States 
govern one class of subjects through the General government and 
another class through State governments, but that it is one and 
the same authority that governs in both.

The analogy borrowed from the Roman constitution, as far as 
applicable, proves the reverse of what is intended.  The dominus 
of the sacred territory was the city, or the Roman state, not the 
sacred territory itself.  The territory received the tenant, and 
gave him as tenant the right to a seat in the senate; but the 
right of the territory was derived not from the domain, but from 
the dominus, that is, the city.  But the city could revoke its 
grant, as it practically did when it conferred the privileges of 
Roman citizenship on the provincials, and gave to plebeians seats 
in the senate.  Moreover, nothing in Roman history indicates that 
to the validity of a senatus consultum it was necessary to count 
the vacant domains of the sacred territory.  The particular 
domain must, under the American system, be counted when it is 
held by a State, but of itself alone, or even with its 
population, it is not a State, and therefore as a State domain is 
vacant and without any political rights or powers whatever.

To argue that the territory and population
303
                                           once a State in the 
Union must needs always be so, would be well enough if a State in 
the Union were individually a sovereign state; for territory, 
with its population not subject to another, is always a sovereign 
state, even though its government has been subverted.  But this 
is not the fact, for territory with its population does not 
constitute a State in the Union; and, therefore, when of a State 
nothing remains but territory and population, the State has 
evidently disappeared.  It will not do then to maintain that 
State suicide is impossible, and that the States that adopted 
secession ordinances have never for a moment ceased to be States 
in the Union, and are free, whenever they choose, to send their 
representatives and senators to occupy their vacant seats in 
Congress.  They must be reorganized first.

There would also be some embarrassment to the government in 
holding that the States that passed the secession ordinance 
remain, notwithstanding, States in the Union.  The citizens of a 
State in the Union cannot be rebels to the United States, unless 
they are rebels to their State; and rebels to their State they 
are not, unless they resist its authority and make war on it.  
The authority of the State in the Union is a legal authority, and 
the citizen in obeying
304
                       it is disloyal neither to the State nor to 
the Union.  The citizens in the States that made war on the 
United States did not resist their State, for they acted by its 
authority.  The only men, on this supposition, in them, who have 
been traitors or rebels, are precisely the Union men who have 
refused to go with their respective States, and have resisted, 
even with armed force, the secession ordinances.  The several 
State governments, under which the so-called rebels carried on 
the war for the destruction of the Union, if the States are in 
the Union, were legal and loyal governments of their respective 
States, for they were legally elected and installed, and 
conformed to their respective State constitutions.  All the acts 
of these governments have been constitutional.  Their entering 
into a confederacy for attaining a separate nationality has been 
legal, and the debts contracted by the States individually, or by 
the confederacy legally formed by them, have been legally 
contracted, stand good against them, and perhaps against the 
United States.  The war against them has been all wrong, and the 
confederates killed in battle have been murdered by the United 
States.  The blockade has been illegal, for no nation can 
blockade its own ports, and the captures and seizures under
305
                                                            it, 
robberies.  The Supreme Court has been wrong in declaring the war 
a territorial civil war, as well as the government in acting 
accordingly.  Now, all these conclusions are manifestly false and 
absurd, and therefore the assumption that the States in question 
have all along been States in the Union cannot be sustained.

It is easy to understand the resistance the Government offers to 
the doctrine that a State may commit suicide, or by its own act 
abdicate its rights and cease to be a State in the Union.  It is 
admissible on no theory of the constitution that has been widely 
entertained.  It is not admissible on Mr. Calhoun's theory of 
State sovereignty, for on that theory a State in going out of the 
Union does not cease to be a State but simply resumes the powers 
it had delegated to the General government.  It cannot be 
maintained on Mr. Madison's or Mr. Webster's theory, that the 
States prior to the Union were severally sovereign, but by the 
Union were constituted one people; for, if this one people are 
understood to be a federal people, State secession would not be 
State suicide, but State independence; and if understood to be 
one consolidated or centralized people, it would be simply 
insurrection or rebellion against the national 
306
                                               authority, 
laboring to make itself a revolution.  The government seems to 
have understood Mr. Madison's theory in both senses--in the 
consolidated sense, in declaring the secessionists insurgents and 
rebels, and in the federal sense, in maintaining that they have 
never seceded, and are still States in the Union, in full 
possession of all their political or State rights.  Perhaps, if 
the government, instead of borrowing from contradictory theories 
of the constitution which have gained currency, had examined in 
the light of historical facts the constitution itself, it would 
have been as constitutional in its doctrine as it has been loyal 
and patriotic, energetic and successful in its military 
administration.

Another reason why the doctrine that State secession is State 
suicide has appeared so offensive to many, is the supposition 
entertained at one time by some of its friends, that the 
dissolution of the State vacates all rights and franchises held 
under it.  But this is a mistake.  The principle is well known 
and recognized by the jurisprudence of all civilized nations, 
that in the transfer of a territory from one territorial 
sovereign to another, the laws in force under the old sovereign 
remain in force after the change, till abrogated, or others are 
enacted
307
        in their place by the new sovereign, except such as are 
necessarily abrogated by the change itself of the sovereign; not, 
indeed, because the old sovereign retains any authority, but, 
because such is presumed by the courts to be the will of the new 
sovereign.  The principle applies in the case of the death of a 
State in the Union.  The laws of the State are territorial, till 
abrogated by competent authority, remain the lex loci, and are in 
full force.  All that would be vacated would be the public rights 
of the State, and in no case the private rights of citizens, 
corporations, or laws affecting them.

But the same conclusion is reached in another way.  In the lapse 
of a State or its return to the condition of a Territory, there 
is really no change of sovereignty.  The sovereignty, both before 
and after, is the United States.  The sovereign authority that 
governs in the State government, as we have seen, though 
independent of the General government, is the United States.  The 
United States govern certain matters through a General 
government, and others through particular State governments.  The 
private rights and interests created, regulated, or protected by 
the particular State, are created, regulated, or protected by the 
United States, as much and as plenarily as
308
                                           if done by the General 
government, and the State laws creating, regulating, or protecting 
them can be abrogated by no power known to the constitution, but 
either the State itself, or the United States in convention legally 
assembled.  If this were what is meant by the States that have 
seceded, or professed to secede, remaining States in the Union, 
they would, indeed, be States still in the Union, notwithstanding 
secession and the government would be right in saying that no 
State can secede.  But this is not what is meant, at least not 
all that is meant.  It is meant not only that the private rights 
of citizens and corporations remain, but the citizens retain all 
the public rights of the State, that is, the right to 
representation in Congress and in the electoral college, and the 
right to sit in the convention, which is not true.

But the correction of the misapprehension that the private rights 
and interests are lost by the lapse of the State may remove the 
graver prejudices against the doctrine of State suicide, and 
dispose loyal and honest Union men to bear the reasons by which 
it is supported, and which nobody has refuted or can refute on 
constitutional grounds.  A Territory by coming into the Union 
becomes a State; a State by going out of the Union becomes a 
Territory.




CHAPTER XIII.

RECONSTRUCTION.


The question of reconstructing the States that seceded will be 
practically settled before these pages can see the light, and 
will therefore be considered here only so far as necessary to 
complete the view of the constitution of the United States.  The 
manner in which the government proposed to settle, has settled, 
or will settle the question, proves that both it and the American 
people have only confused views of the rights and powers of the 
General government, but imperfectly comprehend the distinction 
between the legislative and executive departments of that 
Government, and are far more familiar with party tactics than 
with constitutional law.

It would be difficult to imagine any thing more unconstitutional, 
more crude, or more glaringly impolitic than the mode of 
reconstruction indicated by the various executive proclamations 
that have been issued, bearing on the subject, or even by the 
bill for guaranteeing the States republican governments, that 
passed
310
       Congress, but which failed to obtain the President's 
signature.  It is, in some measure, characteristic of the 
American government to understand how things ought to be done 
only when they are done and it is too late to do them in the 
right way.  Its wisdom comes after action, as if engaged in a 
series of experiments.  But, happily for the nation, few blunders 
are committed that with our young life and elasticity are 
irreparable, and that, after all, are greater than are ordinarily 
committed by older and more experienced nations.  They are not of 
the most fatal character, and are, for the most part, such as are 
incident to the conceit, the heedlessness, the ardor, and the 
impatience of youth, and need excite no serious alarm for the 
future.

There has been no little confusion in the public mind, and in 
that of the government itself, as to what reconstruction is, who 
has the power to reconstruct, and how that power is to be 
exercised.  Are the States that seceded States in the Union, with 
no other disability than that of having no legal governments? or 
are they Territories subject to the Union?  Is their 
reconstruction their erection into new States, or their 
restoration as States previously in the Union?  Is the power to 
reconstruct in the States themselves? or is it in the General 
government?
311
             If partly in the people and partly in the General 
government, is the part in the General government in Congress, or 
in the Executive?  If in Congress, can the Executive, without the 
authority of Congress, proceed to reconstruct, simply leaving it 
for Congress to accept or reject the reconstructed State?   If 
the power is partly in the people of the disorganized States who 
or what defines that people, decides who may or may not vote in 
the reorganization?  On all these questions there has been much 
crude, if not erroneous, thinking, and much inconsistent and 
contradictory action.

The government started with the theory that no State had seceded 
or could secede, and held that, throughout, the States in 
rebellion continued to be States in the Union.  That is, it held 
secession to be a purely personal and not a territorial 
insurrection.  Yet it proclaimed eleven States to be in 
insurrection against the United States, blockaded their ports, 
and interdicted all trade and intercourse of any kind with them.  
The Supreme Court, in order to sustain the blockade and interdict 
as legal, decided the war to be not a war against simply 
individual or personal insurgents but "a territorial civil war."  
This negatived the assumption that the States that took up arms 
against 
312
        the United States remained all the while peaceable and 
loyal States, with all their political rights and powers in the 
Union.  The States in the Union are integral elements of the 
political sovereignty, for the sovereignty of the American nation 
vests in the States finite; and it is absurd to pretend that the 
eleven States that made the rebellion and were carrying on a 
formidable war against the United States, were in the Union, an 
integral element of that sovereign authority which was carrying 
on a yet more formidable war against them.  Nevertheless, the 
government still held to its first assumption, that the States in 
rebellion continued to be States in the Union--loyal States, with 
all their rights and franchises unimpaired!

That the government should at first have favored or acquiesced in 
the doctrine that no State had ceased to be a State in the Union, 
is not to be wondered at.  The extent and determination of the 
secession movement were imperfectly understood, and the belief 
among the supporters of the government, and, perhaps, of the 
government itself, was, that it was a spasmodic movement for a 
temporary purpose, rather than a fixed determination to found an 
independent separate nationality; that it was and would be 
sustained by the real majority
313
                               of the people of none of the 
States, with perhaps the exception of South Carolina; that the 
true policy of the government would be to treat the seceders with 
great forbearance, to avoid all measures likely to exasperate 
them or to embarrass their loyal fellow-citizens, to act simply 
on the defensive, and to leave the Union men in the several 
seceding States to gain a political victory at the polls over the 
secessionists, and to return their States to their normal 
position in the Union.

The government may not have had much faith in this policy, and 
Mr. Lincoln's personal authority might be cited to the effect 
that it had not, but it was urged strongly by the Union men of 
the Border States.  The administration was hardly seated in 
office, and its members were new men, without administrative 
experience; the President, who had been legally elected indeed, 
but without a majority of the popular votes, was far from having 
the full confidence even of the party that elected him; opinions 
were divided; party spirit ran high; the excitement was great, 
the crisis was imminent, the government found itself left by its 
predecessor without an army or a navy, and almost without arms or 
ordnance; it knew not how far it could count on popular support, 
and
314
    was hardly aware whom it could trust or should distrust; all 
was hurry and confusion; and what could the government do but to 
gain time, keep off active war as long as possible, conciliate 
all it could, and take ground which at the time seemed likely to 
rally the largest number of the people to its support?  There 
were men then, warm friends of the administration, and still 
warmer friends of their country, who believed that a bolder, a 
less timid, a less cautious policy would have been wiser, that in 
revolutionary times boldness, what in other times would be 
rashness, is the highest prudence, on the side of the government 
as well as on the side of the revolution; that when once it has 
shown itself, the rebellion that hesitates, deliberates, consults, 
is defeated and so is the government.  The seceders owed from the 
first their successes not to their superior organization, to 
their better preparation, or to the better discipline and 
appointment of their armies, but to their very rashness, to their 
audacity even, and the hesitancy, cautious and deliberation of 
the government.  Napoleon owed his successes as general and 
civilian far more to the air of power he assumed, and the 
conviction he produced of his invincibility in the minds of his 
opponents, than to his civil or
315
                                military strategy and tactics, 
admirable as they both were.  But the government believed it 
wisest to adopt a conciliatory and, in many respects, a 
temporizing policy, and to rely more on weakening the 
secessionists in their respective States than on strengthening 
the hands and hearts of its own staunch and uncompromising 
supporters.  It must strengthen the Union party in the 
insurrectionary States, and as this party hoped to succeed by 
political manipulation rather than by military force, the 
government must rely rather on a show of military power than on 
gaining any decisive battle.  As it hoped, or affected to hope, 
to suppress the rebellion in the States that seceded through 
their loyal citizens, it was obliged to assume that secession was 
the work of a faction, of a few ambitious and disappointed 
politicians, and that the States were all in the Union, and 
continued in the loyal portion of their inhabitants.  Hence its 
aid to the loyal Virginians to organize as the State of Virginia, 
and its subsequent efforts to organize the Union men in 
Louisiana, Arkansas, and Tennessee, and its disposition to 
recognize their organization in each of those States as the State 
itself, though including only a small minority of the territorial 
people.  Had the facts been
316
                            as assumed, the government might have 
treated the loyal people of each State as the State itself, 
without any gross usurpation of power; but, unhappily, the facts 
assumed were not facts, and it was soon found that the Union 
party in all the States that seceded, except the western part of 
Virginia and the eastern section of Tennessee, after secession 
had been carried by the popular vote, went almost unanimously 
with the secessionists; for they as well as the secessionists 
held the doctrine of State sovereignty; and to treat the handful 
of citizens that remained loyal in each State as the State 
itself, became ridiculous, and the government should have seen 
and acknowledged it.

The rebellion being really territorial, and not personal, the 
State that seceded was no more continued in the loyal than in the 
disloyal population.  While the war lasted, both were public 
enemies of the United States, and neither had or could have any 
rights as a State in the Union.  The law recognizes a solidarity 
of all the citizens of a State, and assumes that, when a State is 
at war, all its citizens are at war, whether approving the war or 
not.  The loyal people in the States that seceded incurred none 
of the pains and penalties of treason, but they retained none of 
the political rights of the
317
                            State in the Union, and, in 
reorganizing the State after the suppression of the rebellion, 
they have no more right to take part than the secessionists 
themselves.  They, as well as the secessionists, have followed 
the territory.  It was on this point that the government 
committed its gravest mistake.  As to the reorganization or 
reconstruction of the State, the whole territorial people stood 
on the same footing.

Taking the decision of the Supreme Court as conclusive on the 
subject, the rebellion was territorial, and, therefore, placed 
all the States as States out of the Union, and retained them only 
as population and territory, under or subject to the Union.  The 
States ceased to exist, that is, as integral elements of the 
national sovereignty.  The question then occurred, are they to be 
erected into new States, or are they to be reconstructed and 
restored to the Union as the identical old States that seceded?  
Shall their identity be revived and preserved, or shall they be 
new States, regardless of that identity ?  There can be no 
question that the work to be done was that of restoration, not of 
creation; no tribe should perish from Israel, no star be struck 
from the firmament of the Union.  Every inhabitant of the fallen 
States, and every citi-
318
                      zen of the United States must desire them 
to be revived and continued with their old names and boundaries, 
and all true Americans wish to continue the constitution as it 
is, and the Union as it was.  Who would see old Virginia, the 
Virginia of revolutionary fame, of Washington, Jefferson, 
Madison, of Monroe, the "Old Dominion," once the leading State of 
the Union, dead without hope of resurrection? or South Carolina, 
the land of Rutledge, Moultrie, Laurens, Hayne, Sumter, and 
Marion?  There is something grating to him who values State 
associations, and would encourage State emulation and State 
pride, in the mutilation of the Old Dominion and the erection 
within her borders of the new State called West Virginia.  States 
in the Union are not mere prefectures, or mere dependencies on 
the General government, created for the convenience of 
administration.  They have an individual, a real existence of 
their own, as much so as have the individual members of society.  
They are free members, not of a confederation indeed, but of a 
higher political community, and reconstruction should restore the 
identity of their individual life, suspended for a moment by 
secession, but capable of resuscitation.

These States had become, indeed, for a mo-
319
                                         ment, territory under 
the Union; but in no instance had they or could they become 
territory that had never existed as States.  The fact that the 
territory and people had existed as a State, could with regard to 
none of them be obliterated, and, therefore, they could not be 
erected into absolutely new States.  The process of 
reconstructing them could not be the same as that of creating new 
States.  In creating a new State, Congress, ex necessitate, 
because there is no other power except the national convention 
competent to do it, defines the boundaries of the new State, and 
prescribes the electoral people, or who may take part in the 
preliminary organization but in reconstructing States it does 
neither, for both are done by a law Congress is not competent to 
abrogate or modify, and which can be done only by the United 
States in convention assembled, or by the State itself after its 
restoration.  The government has conceded this, and, in part, has 
acted on it.  It preserves, except in Virginia, the old 
boundaries, and recognizes, or rather professes to recognize the 
old electoral law, only it claims the right to exclude from the 
electoral people those who have voluntarily taken part in the 
rebellion.

The work to be done in States that have se-
320
                                          ceded is that of 
reconstruction, not creation; and this work is not and cannot be 
done, exclusively nor chiefly by the General government, either 
by the Executive or by Congress.  That government can appoint 
military, or even provisional governors, who may designate the 
time and place of holding the convention of the electoral people 
of the disorganized State, as also the time and place of holding 
the elections of delegates to it, and superintend the elections 
so far as to see the polls are opened, and that none but 
qualified electors vote, but nothing more.  All the rest is the 
work of the territorial electoral people themselves, for the 
State within its own sphere must, as one of the United States, be 
a self-governing community.  The General government may concede 
or withhold permission to the disorganized State to reorganize, 
as it judges advisable, but it cannot itself reorganize it.  If it 
concedes the permission, it must leave the whole electoral people 
under the preexisting electoral law free to take part in the work 
of reorganization, and to vote according to their own judgment.  
It has no authority to purge the electoral people, and say who 
may or may not vote, for the whole question of suffrage and the 
qualifications of electors is left to the State, and can be 
settled neither
321
                by an act of Congress nor by an Executive 
proclamation.

If the government theory were admissible, that the disorganized 
States remain States in the Union, the General government could 
have nothing to say on the subject, and could no more interfere 
with elections in any one of them than it could with elections in 
Massachusetts or New York.  But even on the doctrine here 
defended it can interfere with them only by way of general 
superintendence.  The citizens have, indeed, lost their political 
rights, but not their private rights.  Secession has not 
dissolved civil society, or abrogated any of the laws of the 
disorganized State that were in force at the time of secession.  
The error of the government is not in maintaining that these laws 
survive the secession ordinances, and remain the territorial law, 
or lex loci, but in maintaining that they do so by will of the 
State, that has, as a State, really lapsed.  They do so by will 
of the United States, which enacted them through the individual 
State, and which has not in convention abrogated them, save the 
law authorizing slavery, and its dependent laws.

This point has already been made, but as it is one of the 
niceties of the American constitution, it may not be amiss to 
elaborate it at
322
                greater length.  The doctrine of Mr. Jefferson, 
Mr. Madison, and the majority of our jurists, would see to be 
that the States, under God, are severally sovereign in all 
matters not expressly confided to the General government, and 
therefore that the American sovereignty is divided, and the 
citizen owes a double allegiance--allegiance to his State, and 
allegiance to the United States--as if there was a United States 
distinguishable from the States.  Hence Mr. Seward, in an 
official dispatch to our minister at the court of St. James, 
says: "The citizen owes allegiance to the State and to the United 
States."  And nearly all who hold allegiance is due to the Union 
at all, hold that it is also due to the States, only that which 
is due to the United States is paramount, as that under feudalism 
due to the overlord.  But this is not the case.  There is no 
divided sovereignty, no divided allegiance.  Sovereignty is one, 
and vests not in the General government or in the State 
government, but in the United States, and allegiance is due to 
the United States, and to them alone.  Treason can be committed 
only against the United States, and against a State only because 
against the United States, and is properly cognizable only by the 
Federal courts.  Hence the Union men committed no treason in
323
refusing to submit to the secession ordinances of their 
respective States, and in sustaining the national arms against 
secession.

There are two very common mistakes: the one that the States 
individually possess all the powers not delegated to the General 
government; and the other that the Union, or United States, have 
only delegated powers.  But the United States possess all the 
powers of a sovereign state, and the States individually and the 
General government possess only such powers as the United States 
in convention delegate to them respectively.  The sovereign is 
neither the General government nor the States severally, but the 
United States in convention.  The United States are the one 
indivisible sovereign, and this sovereign governs alike general 
matters in the General government, and particular matters in the 
several State governments.  All legal authority in either 
emanates from this one indivisible and plenary sovereign, and 
hence the law enacted by a State are really enacted by the United 
States, and derive from them their force and vitality as laws.  
Hence, as the United States survive the particular State, the 
lapse of the State does not abrogate the State laws, or dissolve 
civil society within its jurisdiction.

324
This is evidently so, because civil society in the particular 
State does not rest on the State alone, nor on Congress, but on 
the United States.  Hence all civil rights of every sort created 
by the individual State are really held from the United States, 
and therefore it was that the people of non-slaveholding States 
were, as citizens of the United States, responsible for the 
existence of slavery in the States that seceded.  There is a 
solidarity of States in the Union as there is of individuals in 
each of the States.  The political error of the Abolitionists was 
not in calling upon the people of the United States to abolish 
slavery, but in calling upon them to abolish it through the 
General government, which had no jurisdiction in the case; or in 
their sole capacity as men, on purely humanitarian grounds, which 
were the abrogation of all government and civil society itself, 
instead of calling upon them to do it as the United States in 
convention assembled, or by an amendment to the constitution of 
the United States in the way ordained by that constitution 
itself.  This understood, the constitution and laws of a defunct 
State remain in force by virtue of the will of the United States, 
till the State is raised from the dead, restored to life and 
activity, and repeals or al-
325
                           ters them, or till they are repealed 
or altered by the United States or the national convention.  But 
as the defunct State could not, and the convention had not 
repealed or altered them, save in the one case mentioned, the 
General government had no alternative but to treat them and all 
rights created by them as the territorial law, and to respect 
them as such.

What then do the people of the several States that seceded lose 
by secession?  They lose, besides incurring, so far as disloyal, 
the pains and penalties of treason, their political rights, or 
right, as has just been said, to be in their own department 
self-governing communities, with the right of representation in 
Congress and the electoral colleges, and to sit in the national 
convention, or of being counted in the ratification of amendments 
to the constitution--precisely what it was shown a Territorial 
people gain by being admitted as a State into the Union.  This is 
the difference between the constitutional doctrine and that 
adopted by Mr. Lincoln's and Mr. Johnson's Administrations.  But 
what authority, on this constitutional doctrine, does the General 
government gain over the people of States that secede, that it 
has not over others!  As to their internal
326
                                           constitution, their 
private rights of person or property, it gains none.  It has over 
them, till they are reconstructed and restored to the Union, the 
right to institute for them provisional governments, civil or 
military, precisely as it has for the people of a territory that 
is not and has never been one of the United States; but in their 
reconstruction it has less, for the geographical boundaries and 
electoral people of each are already defined by a law which does 
not depend on its will, and which it can neither abrogate nor 
modify.  Here is the difference between the constitutional 
doctrine and that of the so-called radicals.  The State has gone, 
but its laws remain, so far as the United States in convention 
does not abrogate them; not because the authority of the State 
survives, but because the United States so will, or are presumed 
to will.  The United States have by a constitutional amendment 
abrogated the laws of the several States authorizing slavery, and 
prohibited slavery forever within the jurisdiction of the Union; 
and no State can now be reconstructed and be admitted into the 
Union with a constitution that permits slavery, for that would be 
repugnant to the constitution of the United States.  If the 
constitutional amendment is not recognized as rati-
327
                                                  fied by the 
requisite number of States, it is the fault of the government in 
persisting in counting as States what are no States.  Negro 
suffrage, as white suffrage, is at present a question for 
States.

The United States guarantee to such State a republican form of 
government.  And this guarantee, no doubt, authorizes Congress to 
intervene in the internal constitution of a State so far as to 
force it to adopt a republican form of government, but not so far 
as to organize a government for a State, or to compel a 
territorial people to accept or adopt a State constitution for 
themselves.  If a State attempts to organize a form of government 
not republican, it can prevent it; and if a Territory adopts an 
unrepublican form, it can force it to change its constitution to 
one that is republican, or compel it to remain a Territory under 
a provisional government.  But this gives the General government 
no authority in the organization or re-organization of States 
beyond seeing that the form of government adopted by the 
territorial people is republican.  To press it further, to make 
the constitutional clause a pretext for assuming the entire 
control of the organization or re-organization of a State, is a 
manifest abuse--a palpable violation of the constitution and
328
                                                             of 
the whole American system.  The authority given by the clause is 
specific, and is no authority for intervention in the general 
reconstruction of the lapsed State.  It gives authority in no 
question raised by secession or its consequences, and can give 
none, except, from within or from without, there is an overt 
attempt to organize a State in the Union with an unrepublican 
form of government.

The General government gives permission to the territorial people 
of the defunct State to re-organize, or it contents itself with 
suffering them, without special recognition, to reorganize in 
their own way, and apply to Congress for admission, leaving it to 
Congress to admit them as a State, or not, according to its own 
discretion, in like manner as it admits a new State; but the 
re-organization itself must be the work of the territorial people 
themselves, under their old electoral law.  The power that 
reconstructs is in the people themselves; the power that admits 
them, or receives them into the Union, is Congress.  The 
Executive, therefore, has no authority in the matter, beyond that 
of seeing that the laws are duly complied with; and whatever 
power he assumes, whether by proclamation or by instructions 
given to the provisional governors, civil or military, is 
329
                                                          simply 
a usurpation of the power of Congress, which it rests with 
Congress to condone or not, as it may see fit.  Executive 
proclamations, excluding a larger or a smaller portion of the 
electoral or territorial people from the exercise of the elective 
franchise in reorganizing the State, and executive efforts to 
throw the State into the hands of one political party or another, 
are an unwarrantable assumption of power, for the President, in 
relation to reconstruction, acts only under the peace powers of 
the constitution, and simply as the first executive officer of 
the Union.  His business is to execute the laws, not to make 
them.  His legislative authority is confined to his qualified 
veto on the acts of Congress, and to the recommendation to 
Congress of such measures as he believes are needed by the 
country.

In reconstructing a disorganized State, neither Congress nor the 
Executive has any power that either has not in time of peace.  
The Executive, as commander-in-chief of the army, may ex 
necessitate, pace it ad interim under a military governor, but he 
cannot appoint even a provisional civil governor till Congress 
has created the office and given him authority to fill it; far 
less can be legally give instructions to the civil governor as to 
the mode or manner of recon-
330
                           structing the disorganized State, or 
decide who may or may not vote in the preliminary reorganization.  
The Executive could do nothing of the sort, even in regard to a 
Territory never erected into a State.  It belongs to Congress, 
not to the Executive, to erect Territorial or provisional 
governments, like those of Dacotah, Colorado, Montana, Nebraska, 
and New Mexico; and, Congress, not the executive, determines the 
boundaries of the Territory, passes the enabling act, and defines 
the electoral people, till the State is organized and able to act 
herself.  Even Congress, in reconstructing and restoring to life 
and vigor in the Union a disorganized State, has nothing to say 
as to its boundaries or its electoral people, nor any right to 
interfere between parties in the State, to throw the 
reconstructed State into the hands of one or another party.  All 
that Congress can insist on is, that the territorial people shall 
reconstruct with a government republican in form; that its 
senators and representatives in Congress, and the members of the 
State legislature, and all executive and judicial officers of the 
State shall be bound by oath or affirmation to support and defend 
the constitution of the United States.  In the whole work the 
President has nothing to do with reconstruction, except to see 
that
331
     peace is preserved and the laws are fully executed.

It may be at least doubted that the Executive has power to 
proclaim amnesty and pardon to rebels after the civil war has 
ceased, and ceased it has when the rebels have thrown down their 
arms and submitted; for his pardoning power is only to pardon 
after conviction and judgment of the court: it is certain that he 
has no power to proscribe or punish even traitors, except by due 
process of law.  When the war is over he has only his ordinary 
peace powers.  He cannot then disfranchise any portion of the 
electoral people of a State that seceded, even though there is no 
doubt that they have taken part in the rebellion, and may still 
be suspected of disloyal sentiments.  Not even Congress can do 
it, and no power known to the constitution till the State is 
reconstructed can do it without due process of law, except the 
national convention.  Should the President do any of the things 
supposed, he would both abuse the power he has and usurp power 
that he has not, and render himself liable to impeachment.  There 
are many things very proper, and even necessary to be done, which 
are high crimes when done by an improper person or agent.  The 
duty of the President, when there are
332
                                      steps to be taken or things 
to be done which he believes very necessary, but which are not 
within his competency, is, if Congress is not in session, to 
call it together at the earliest practicable moment, and submit 
the matter to its wisdom and discretion.

It must be remembered that the late rebellion was not a merely 
personal but a territorial rebellion.  In such a rebellion, 
embracing eleven States, and, excluding slaves, a population of 
at least seven millions, acting under an organized territorial 
government, preserving internal civil order, supporting an army 
and navy under regularly commissioned officers, and carrying on 
war as a sovereign nation--in such a territorial rebellion no one 
in particular can be accused and punished as a traitor.  The 
rebellion is not the work of a few ambitious or reckless leaders, 
but of the people, and the responsibility of the crime, whether 
civil or military, is not individual, but common to the whole 
territorial people engaged in it; and seven millions, or the half 
of them, are too many to ban to exile, or even to disfranchise
Their defeat and the failure of their cause must be their 
punishment.  The interest of the country, as well the sentiment 
of the civilized world--it might almost be said the law of 
nations--demands their permission
333
                                  to return to their allegiance, 
to be treated according to their future merits, as an integral 
portion of the American people.

The sentiment of the civilized world has much relaxed from its 
former severity toward political offenders.  It regards with 
horror the savage cruelties of Great Britain to the unfortunate 
Jacobites, after their defeat under Charles Edward, at Culloden, 
in 1746, their barbarous treatment of the United Irishmen in 
1798, and her brutality to the mutinous Hindoos in 1857-'58; the 
harshness of Russia toward the insurgent Poles, defeated in their 
mad attempts to recover their lost nationality; the severity of 
Austria, under Haynau, toward the defeated Magyars.  The liberal 
press kept up for years, especially in England and the United 
States, a perpetual howl against the Papal and Neapolitan 
governments for arresting and imprisoning men who conspired to 
overthrow them.  Louis Kossuth was no less a traitor than 
Jefferson Davis, and yet the United States solicited his release 
from a Turkish prison, and sent a national ship to bring him 
hither as the nation's guest.  The people of the United States 
have held from the first "the right of insurrection," and have 
given their moral support to every insurrection in the Old or New 
World they discovered, and for them
334
                                    to treat with severity any 
portion of the Southern secessionists, who, at the very worst, 
only acted on the principles the nation had uniformly avowed and 
pronounced sacred, would be regarded, and justly, by the 
civilized world as little less than infamous.

Not only the fair fame, but the interest of the Union forbids any 
severity toward the people lately in arms against the government.  
The interest of the nation demands not the death or the expulsion 
of the secessionists, and, least of all, of those classes 
proscribed by the President's proclamation of the 29th of May, 
1865, nor even their disfranchisement, perpetual or temporary; 
but their restoration to citizenship, and their loyal 
co-operation with all true-hearted Americans, in hearing the 
wounds inflicted on the whole country by the civil war.  There 
need be no fear to trust them.  Their cause is lost; they may or 
may not regret it, but lost it is, and lost forever.  They 
appealed to the ballot-box, and were defeated; they appealed from 
the ballot-box to arms, to war, and have been again defeated, 
terribly defeated.  They know it and feel it.  There is no 
further appeal for them; the judgment of the court of last resort 
has been rendered, and rendered against them.  The cause is 
finished, the controversy closed,
335
                                  never to be re-opened.  
Henceforth the Union is invincible, and it is worse than idle to 
attempt to renew the war against it.  Henceforth their lot is 
bound up with that of the nation, and all their hopes and 
interests, for themselves and their children, and their 
children's children, depend on their being permitted to demean 
themselves henceforth as peaceable and loyal American citizens.  
They must seek their freedom, greatness, and glory in the 
freedom, greatness, and glory of the American republic, in which, 
after all, they can be far freer, greater, more glorious than in 
a separate and independent confederacy.  All the arguments and 
considerations urged by Union men against their secession, come 
back to them now with redoubled force to keep them henceforth 
loyal to the Union.

They cannot afford to lose the nation, and the nation cannot 
afford to lose them.  To hang or exile them, and depopulate and 
suffer to run to waste the lands they had cultivated, were sad 
thrift, sadder than that of deporting four millions of negroes 
and colored men.  To exchange only those excepted from amnesty 
and pardon by President Johnson, embracing some two millions or 
more, the very pars sanior of the Southern population, for what 
would re-
336
        main or flock in to supply their place, would be only the 
exchange of Glaucus and Diomed, gold for brass; to disfranchise 
them, confiscate their estates, and place them under the 
political control of the freedmen, lately their slaves, and the 
ignorant and miserable "white trash," would be simply to render 
rebellion chronic, and to convert seven millions of Americans, 
willing and anxious to be free, loyal American citizens, 
eternal enemies.  They have yielded to superior numbers and 
resources; beaten, but not disgraced, for they have, even in 
rebellion, proved themselves what they are--real Americans.  They 
are the product of the American soil, the free growth of the 
American republic, and to disgrace them were to disgrace the 
whole American character and people.

The wise Romans never allowed a triumph to a Roman general for 
victories, however brilliant, won over Romans.  In civil war, the 
victory won by the government troops is held to be a victory for 
the country, in which all parties are victors, and nobody is 
vanquished.  It was as truly for the good of the secessionists to 
fail, as it was for those, who sustained the government to 
succeed; and the government having forced their submission and 
vindicated its own author-
337
                         ity, it should now leave them to enjoy, 
with others, the victory which it his won for the common good of 
all.  When war becomes a stern necessity, when it breaks out, and 
while it lasts, humanity requires it to be waged in earnest, 
prosecuted with vigor, and made as damaging, as distressful to 
the enemy as the laws of civilized nations permit.  It is the way 
to bring it to a speedy close, and to save life and property.  
But when it is over, when the enemy submits, and peace returns, 
the vanquished should be treated with gentleness and love.  No 
rancor should remain, no vengeance should be sought; they who met 
in mortal conflict on the battle-field should be no longer 
enemies, but embrace as comrades, as friends, as brothers.  None 
but a coward kicks a fallen foe; a brave people is generous, and 
the victors in the late war can afford to be generous generously.  
They fought for the Union, and the Union has no longer an enemy; 
their late enemies are willing and proud to be their countrymen, 
fellow-citizens, and friends; and they should look to it that 
small politicians do not rob them in the eyes of the world, by 
unnecessary and ill-timed severity to the submissive, of the 
glory of being, as they are, a great, noble, chivalric, generous, 
and magnanimous people.

338
The government and the small politicians, who usually are the 
most influential with all governments, should remember that none 
of the secessionists, however much in error they have been, have 
committed the moral crime of treason.  They held, with the 
majority of the American people, the doctrine of State 
sovereignty, and on that doctrine they had a right to secede, and 
have committed no treason, been guilty of no rebellion.  That 
was, indeed, no reason why the government should not use all its 
force, if necessary, to preserve the national unity and the 
integrity of the national domain; but it is a reason, and a 
sufficient reason, why no penalty of treason should be inflicted 
on secessionists or their leaders, after their submission, and 
recognition of the sovereignty of the United States as that to 
which they owe allegiance.  None of the secessionists have been 
rebels or traitors, except in outward act, and there can, after 
the act has ceased, be no just punishment where there has been no 
criminal intent.  Treason is the highest crime, and deserves 
exemplary punishment; but not where there has been no treasonable 
intent, where they who committed it did not believe it was 
treason, and on principles held by the majority of their 
countrymen, and by the party that had gener-
339
                                           ally held the 
government, there really was no treason.  Concede State 
sovereignty, and Jefferson Davis was no traitor in the war he 
made on the United States, for he made none till his State had 
seceded.  He could not then be arraigned for his acts after 
secession, and at most, only for conspiracy, if at all, before 
secession.

But, if you permit all to vote in the re-organization of the 
State who, under the old electoral law, have the elective 
franchise, you throw the State into the hands of those who have 
been disloyal to the Union.  If so, and you cannot trust them, 
the remedy is not in disfranchising the majority, but in 
prohibiting re-organization, and in holding the territorial 
people still longer under the provisional government, civil or 
military.  The old electoral law disqualifies all who have been 
convicted of treason either to the State or the United States, 
and neither Congress nor the Executive can declare any others 
disqualified on account of disloyalty.  But you must throw the 
State into the hands of those who took part, directly or 
indirectly, in the rebellion, if you reconstruct the States at 
all, for they are undeniably the great body of the territorial 
people in all the States that seceded.  These people having 
submitted, and declared their intention to reconstruct the State 
as a
340
     State in the Union, you must amend the constitution of the 
United States, unless they are convicted of a disqualifying crime 
by due process of law, before you can disfranchise them.  It is 
impossible to reconstruct any one of the disorganized States with 
those alone, or as the dominant party, who have adhered to the 
Union throughout the fearful struggle, as self-governing States.  
The State, resting on so small a portion of the people, would 
have no internal strength, no self-support, and could stand only 
as upheld by federal arms, which would greatly impair the free 
and healthy action of the whole American system.

The government attempted to do it in Virginia, Louisiana, 
Arkansas, and Tennessee, before the rebellion was suppressed, but 
without authority and without success.  The organizations, 
effected at great expense, and sustained only by military force, 
were neither States nor State governments, nor capable of being 
made so by any executive or congressional action.  If the 
disorganized States, as the government held, were still States in 
the Union, these organizations were flagrantly revolutionary, as 
effected not only without, but in defiance of State authority; if 
they had seceded and ceased to be States, as was the fact, they 
were equally
341
             unconstitutional and void of authority, because not 
created by the free suffrage of the territorial people, who alone 
are competent to construct or reconstruct a state.

If the Unionists had retained the State organization and 
government, however small their number, they would have held the 
State, and the government would have been bound to recognize and 
to defend them as such with all the force of the Union.  The 
rebellion would then have been personal, not territorial.  But 
such was not the case.  The State organization, the State 
government, the whole State authority rebelled, made the 
rebellion territorial, not personal, and left the Unionists, very 
respectable persons assuredly, residing, if they remained at 
home, in rebel territory, traitors in the eye of their respective 
States, and shorn of all political status or rights.  Their 
political status was simply that of the old loyalists, or 
adherents of the British crown in the American war for 
Independence, and it was as absurd to call them the State, as it 
would have been for Great Britain to have called the old Tories 
the colonies.

The theory on which the government attempted to re-organize the 
disorganized States rested on two false assumptions: first, that 
the
342           
    people are personally sovereign; and, second, that all the 
power of the Union vests in the General government.  The first, 
as we have seen, is the principle of so-called "squatter 
sovereignty," embodied in the famous Kansas-Nebraska Bill, which 
gave birth, in opposition, to the Republican party of 1856.  The 
people are sovereign only as the State, and the State is 
inseparable from the domain.  The Unionists without the State 
government, without any State organization, could not hold the 
domain, which, when the State organization is gone, escheats to 
the United States, that is to say, ceases to exist.  The American 
democracy is territorial, not personal.

The General government, in time of war or rebellion, is indeed 
invested, for war purposes, with all the power of the Union.  
This is the war power.  But, though apparently unlimited, the war 
power is yet restricted to war purposes, and expires by natural 
limitation when peace returns;, and peace returns, in a civil 
war, when the rebels have thrown down their arms and submitted to 
the national authority, and without any formal declaration.  
During the war, or while the rebellion lasts, it can suspend the 
civil courts, the civil laws, the State constitutions, any thing 
necessary to the success of the
343
                                war--and of the necessity the 
military authorities are the judges; but it cannot abolish, 
abrogate, or reconstitute them.  On the return of peace they 
revive of themselves in all their vigor.  The emancipation 
proclamation of the President, if it emancipated the slaves in 
certain States and parts of States, and if those whom it 
emancipated could not be re-enslaved, did not anywhere abolish 
slavery, or change the laws authorizing it; and if the Government 
should be sustained by Congress or by the Supreme Court in 
counting the disorganized States as States in the Union, the 
legal status of slavery throughout the Union, with the exception 
of Maryland, and perhaps Missouri, is what it was before the 
war.*

The Government undoubtedly supposed, in the reconstructions it 
attempted, that it was acting under the war power; but as 
reconstruction can never be necessary for war purposes, and as it 
is in its very nature a work of peace, incapable of being 
effected by military force, since its validity depends entirely 
on its being the free action of the territorial people to be 
reconstructed, the General government had and could have, with 
regard to it, only its ordinary

* This was the case in August, 1865.  It may be quite otherwise 
before these pages see the light.

344         
                                peace powers.  Reconstruction is 
jure pacis, not jure belli.

Yet such illegal organizations, though they are neither States 
nor State governments, and incapable of being legalized by any 
action of the Executive or of Congress, may, nevertheless, be 
legalized by being indorsed or acquiesced in by the territorial 
people.  They are wrong, as are all usurpations; they are 
undemocratic, inasmuch as they attempt to give the minority the 
power to rule the majority; they are dangerous inasmuch as they 
place the State in the hands of a party that can stand only as 
supported by the General government, and thus destroy the proper 
freedom and independence of the State, and open the door to 
corruption, tend to keep alive rancor and ill feeling, and to 
retard the period of complete pacification, which might be 
effected in three months as well as in three years, or twenty 
years; yet they can become legal, as other governments illegal in 
their origin become legal, with time and popular acquiescence.  
The right way is always the shortest and easiest; but when a 
government must oftener follow than lead the public, it is not 
always easy to hit the right way, and still less easy to take it.  
The general instincts of the people are right as to the end 
345
                                                            to be 
gained, but seldom right as to the means of gaining it; and 
politicians of the Union party, as well as of the late secession 
party, have an eye in reconstructing, to the future political 
control of the State when it is reconstructed.

The secessionists, if permitted to retain their franchise, would, 
even if they accepted abolition, no doubt re-organize their 
respective States on the basis of white suffrage, and so would 
the Unionists, if left to themselves.  There is no party at the 
South prepared to adopt negro suffrage, and there would be none 
at the North if the negroes constituted any considerable portion 
of the population.  As the reconstruction of a State cannot be 
done under the war power, the General government can no more 
enfranchise than it can disfranchise any portion of the 
territorial people, and the question of negro suffrage must be 
left, where the constitution leaves it--to the States severally, 
each to dispose of it for itself.  Negro suffrage will, no doubt, 
come in time, as soon as the freedmen are prepared for it, and 
the danger is that it will be attempted too soon.

It would be a convenience to have the negro vote in the 
reconstruction of the States disorganized by secession, for it 
would secure their re-construction with antislavery 
constitutions, and also
346
                        make sure of the proposed antislavery 
amendment to the Constitution of the United States; but there is 
no power in Congress to enfranchise the negroes in the States 
needing reconstruction, and, once assured of their freedom, the 
freedmen would care little for the Union, of which they 
understand nothing.  They would vote, for the most part, with 
their former masters, their employers, the wealthier and more 
intelligent classes, whether loyal or disloyal; for, as a rule, 
these will treat them with greater personal consideration and 
kindness than others.  The dislike of the negro, and hostility to 
negro equality, increase as you descend in the social scale.  The 
freedmen, without political instruction or experience, who have 
had no country, no domicile, understand nothing of loyalty or of 
disloyalty.  They have strong local attachments, but they can 
have no patriotism.  If they adhered to the Union in the 
rebellion, fought for it, bled for it, it was not from loyalty, 
but because they knew that their freedom could come only from the 
success of the Union arms.  That freedom secured, they have no 
longer any interest in the Union, and their local attachments, 
personal associations, habits, tastes, likes and dislikes, are 
Southern, not Northern.  In any contest between the
347
                                                    North and the 
South, they would take, to a man, the Southern side.  After the 
taunts of the women, the captured soldiers of the Union found, 
until nearly the last year of the war, nothing harder to bear, 
when marched as prisoners into Richmond, than the antics and 
hootings of the negroes.  Negro suffrage on the score of loyalty, 
is at best a matter of indifference to the Union, and as the 
elective franchise is not a natural right, but a civil trust, the 
friends of the negro should, for the present, be contented with 
securing him simply equal rights of person and property.




348
CHAPTER XIV.

POLITICAL TENDENCIES.


The most marked political tendency of the American people has 
been, since 1825, to interpret their government as a pure and 
simple democracy, and to shift it from a territorial to a purely 
popular basis, or from the people as the state, inseparably 
united to the national territory or domain, to the people as 
simply population, either as individuals or as the race.  Their 
tendency has unconsciously, therefore, been to change their 
constitution from a republican to a despotic, or from a civilized 
to a barbaric constitution.

The American constitution is democratic, in the sense that the 
people are sovereign that all laws and public acts run in their 
name; that the rulers are elected by them, and are responsible to 
them; but they are the people territorially constituted and fixed 
to the soil, constituting what Mr. Disraeli, with more propriety 
perhaps than he thinks, calls a "territorial democracy."  To this 
territorial democracy, the real American democracy, stand opposed 
two
349
    other democracies--the one personal and the other 
humanitarian--each alike hostile to civilization, and tending to 
destroy the state, and capable of sustaining government only on 
principles common to all despotisms.

In every man there is a natural craving for personal freedom and 
unrestrained action--a strong desire to be himself, not 
another--to be his own master, to go when and where he pleases, 
to do what he chooses, to take what he wants, wherever he can 
find it, and to keep what he takes.  It is strong in all nomadic 
tribes, who are at once pastoral and predatory, and is seldom 
weak in our bold frontier-men, too often real "border ruffians."  
It takes different forms in different stages of social 
development, but it everywhere identifies liberty with power.  
Restricted in its enjoyment to one man, it makes him chief, chief 
of the family, the tribe, or the nation; extended in its 
enjoyment to the few, it founds an aristocracy, creates a 
nobility--for nobleman meant originally only freeman, as it does 
350
his own consent, express or constructive.  This is the so-called 
Jeffersonian democracy, in which government has no powers but 
such as it derives from the consent of the governed, and is 
personal democracy or pure individualism philosophically 
considered, pure egoism, which says, "I am God."  Under this sort 
of democracy, based on popular, or rather individual sovereignty, 
expressed by politicians when they call the electoral people, 
half seriously, half mockingly, "the sovereigns," there obviously 
can be no state, no social rights or civil authority; there can 
be only a voluntary association, league, alliance, or 
confederation, in which individuals may freely act together as 
long as they find it pleasant, convenient, or useful, but from 
which they may separate or secede whenever they find it for their 
interest or their pleasure to do so.  State sovereignty and 
secession are based on the same democratic principle applied to 
the several States of the Union instead of individuals.

The tendency to this sort of democracy has been strong in large 
sections of the American people from the first, and has been 
greatly strengthened by the general acceptance of the theory that 
government originates in compact.  The full realization of this 
tendency, which, hap-
351
                    pily, is impracticable save in theory, would 
be to render every man independent alike of every other man and 
of society, with full right and power to make his own will 
prevail.  This tendency was strongest in the slaveholding States, 
and especially, in those States, in the slaveholding class, the 
American imitation of the feudal nobility of mediaeval Europe; 
and on this side the war just ended was, in its most general 
expression, a war in defence of personal democracy or the 
sovereignty of the people individually, against the humanitarian 
democracy, represented by the abolitionists, and the territorial 
democracy, represented by the Government.  This personal 
democracy has been signally defeated in the defeat of the late 
confederacy, and can hardly again become strong enough to be 
dangerous.

But the humanitarian democracy, which scorns all geographical 
lines, effaces all in individualities, and professes to plant 
itself on humanity alone, has acquired by the war new strength, 
and is not without menace to our future.  The solidarity of the 
race, which is the condition of all human life, founds, as we 
have seen, society, and creates what are called social rights, 
the, rights alike of society in regard to individuals, and of 
individuals in regard to society.  
352
                                   Territorial divisions or 
circumscriptions found particular societies, states, or nations; 
yet as the race is one and all its members live by communion with 
God through it and by communion one with another, these 
particular states or nations are never absolutely independent of 
each other but, bound together by the solidarity of the race, so 
that there is a real solidarity of nations as well as of 
individuals--the truth underlying Kossuth's famous declaration of 
the solidarity of peoples."

The solidarity of nations is the basis of international law, 
binding on every particular nation, and which every civilized 
nation recognizes and enforces on its own subjects or citizens 
through its own courts as an integral part of its own municipal 
or national law.

The personal or individual right is therefore restricted by the 
rights of society, and the rights of the particular society or 
nation are limited by international law, or the rights of 
universal society--the truth the ex-governor of Hungary 
overlooked.  The grand error of Gentilism was in denying the 
unity and therefore the solidarity of the race, involved in its 
denial or misconception of the unity of God.  It therefore was 
never able to assign any solid basis to international law, and 
gave it only a
353
               conventional or customary authority, thus leaving 
the jus gentium, which it recognized in deed, without any real 
foundation in the constitution of things, or authority in the 
real world.  Its real basis is in the solidarity of the race, 
which has its basis in the unity of God, not the dead or abstract 
unity asserted by the old Eleatics, the Neo-Platonists, or the 
modern Unitarians, but the living unity consisting in the 
threefold relation in the Divine Essence, of Father, Son, and 
Holy Ghost, as asserted by Christian revelation, and believed, 
more or less intelligently, by all Christendom.

The tendency in the Southern States has been to overlook the 
social basis of the state, or the rights of society founded on 
the solidarity of the race, and to make all rights and powers 
personal, or individual; and as only the white race has been able 
to assert and maintain its personal freedom, only men of that 
race are held to have the right to be free.  Hence the people of 
those States felt no scruple in holding the black or colored race 
as slaves. Liberty, said they, is the right only of those who 
have the ability to assert and maintain it.  Let the negro prove 
that he has this ability by asserting and maintaining his 
freedom, and he will prove his right to be free,
354
                                                 and that it is a 
gross outrage, a manifest injustice, to enslave him; but, till 
then, let him be my servant, which is best for him and for me.  
Why ask me to free him?  I shall by doing so only change the form 
of his servitude.  Why appeal to me!  Am I my brother's keeper? 
Nay, is he my brother?  Is this negro, more like an ape or a 
baboon than a human being, of the same race with myself?  I 
believe it not.  But in some instances, at least, my dear 
slaveholder, your slave is literally your brother, and sometimes 
even your son, born of your own daughter.  The tendency of the 
Southern democrat was to deny the unity of the race, as well as 
all obligations of society to protect the weak and helpless, and 
therefore all true civil society.

At the North there has been, and is even yet, an opposite 
tendency--a tendency to exaggerate the social element, to 
overlook the territorial basis of the state, and to disregard the 
rights of individuals.  This tendency has been and is strong in 
the people called abolitionists.  The American abolitionist is so 
engrossed with the unity that he loses the solidarity of the 
race, which supposes unity of race and multiplicity of 
individuals; and falls to see any thing legitimate and 
authoritative in
355
                 geographical divisions or territorial 
circumscriptions.  Back of these, back of individuals, he sees 
humanity, superior to individuals, superior to states, 
governments, and laws, and holds that he may trample on them all 
or give them to the winds at the call of humanity or "the higher 
law."  The principle on which he acts is as indefensible as the 
personal or egoistical democracy of the slaveholders and their 
sympathizers.  Were his socialistic tendency to become exclusive 
and realized, it would found in the name of humanity a complete 
social despotism, which, proving impracticable from its very 
generality, would break up in anarchy, in which might makes 
right, as in the slaveholder's democracy.

The abolitionists, in supporting themselves on humanity in its 
generality, regardless of individual and territorial rights, can 
recognize no state, no civil authority, and therefore are as much 
out of the order of civilization, and as much in that of 
barbarism, as is the slaveholder himself.  Wendell Phillips is as 
far removed from true Christian civilization as was John C. 
Calhoun, and William Lloyd Garrison is as much of a barbarian and 
despot in principle and tendency as Jefferson Davis.  Hence the 
great body of the people in the non-slaveholding States, wedded 
to American democracy as they
354
                              were and are could never, as much 
as they detested slavery, be induced to make common cause with 
the abolitionists, and their apparent union in the late civil war 
was accidental, simply owing to the fact that for the time the 
social democracy and the territorial coincides or had the same 
enemy.  The great body of the loyal people instinctively felt 
that pure socialism is as incompatible with American democracy as 
pure individualism; and the abolitionists are well aware that 
slavery has been abolished, not for humanitarian or socialistic 
reasons but really for reasons of state, in order to save the 
territorial democracy.  The territorial democracy would not unite 
to eliminate even so barbaric an element as slavery, till the 
rebellion gave them the constitutional right to abolish it; and 
even then so scrupulous were they, that they demanded a 
constitutional amendment, so as to be able to make clean work of 
it, without any blow to individual or State rights.

The abolitionists were right in opposing slavery, but not in 
demanding its abolition on humanitarian or socialistic grounds.  
Slavery is really a barbaric element, and is in direct antagonism 
to American civilization.  The whole force of the national life 
opposes it, and must finally eliminate it, or become itself 
extinct
357
        and it is no mean proof of their utter want of sympathy 
with all the living forces of modern civilization, that the 
leading men of the South and their prominent friends at the North 
really persuaded themselves that with cotton, rice, and tobacco, 
they could effectually resist the anti-slavery movement, and 
perpetuate their barbaric democracy.  They studied the classics, 
they admired Greece and Rome, and imagined that those nations 
became great by slavery, instead of being great even in spite of 
slavery.  They failed to take into the account the fact that when 
Greece and Rome were in the zenith of their glory, all 
contemporary nations were also slaveholding nations, and that if 
they were the greatest and most highly civilized nations of their 
times, they were not fitted to be the greatest and most highly 
civilized nations of all times.  They failed also to perceive 
that, if the Graeco-Roman republic did not include the whole 
territorial people in the political people, it yet recognized 
both the social and the territorial foundation of the state, and 
never attempted to rest it on pure individualism; they forgot, 
too, that Greece and Rome both fell, and fell precisely through 
internal weakness caused by the barbarism within, not through the 
force of the barbarism
358
                       beyond their frontiers.  The world has 
changed since the time when ten thousand of his slaves were 
sacrificed as a religious offering to the manes of a single Roman 
master.  The infusion of the Christian dogma of the unity and 
solidarity of the race into the belief, the life, the laws, the 
jurisprudence of all civilized nations, has doomed slavery and 
every species of barbarism; but this our slaveholding countrymen 
saw not.

It rarely happens that in any controversy, individual or 
national, the real issue is distinctly presented, or the precise 
question in debate is clearly and distinctly understood by either 
party.  Slavery was only incidentally involved in the late war.  
The war was occasioned by the collision of two extreme parties; 
but it was itself a war between civilization and barbarism, 
primarily between the territorial democracy and the personal 
democracy, and in reality, on the part of the nation, as much a 
war against the socialism of the abolitionist as against the 
individualism of the slaveholder.  Yet the victory, though 
complete over the former, is only half won over the latter, for 
it has left the humanitarian democracy standing, and perhaps for 
the moment stronger than ever.  The socialistic democracy was 
enlisted by the territorial, not to strengthen the government at
359
home, as it imagines, for that it did not do, and could not do, 
since the national instinct was even more opposed to it than to 
the personal democracy; but under its antislavery aspect, to 
soften the hostility of foreign powers, and ward off foreign 
intervention, which was seriously threatened.  The populations of 
Europe, especially of France and England, were decidedly 
anti-slavery, and if the war here appeared to them a war, not 
solely for the unity of the nation and the integrity of its 
domain, as it really was, in which they took and could take no 
interest, but a war for the abolition of slavery, their 
governments would not venture to intervene.  This was the only 
consideration that weighed with Mr. Lincoln, as he himself 
assured the author, and induced him to issue his Emancipation 
Proclamation; and Europe rejoices in our victory over the 
rebellion only so far as it has liberated the slaves, and honors 
the late President only as their supposed liberator, not as the 
preserver of the unity and integrity of the nation.  This is 
natural enough abroad, and proves the wisdom of the anti-slavery 
policy of the government, which had become absolutely necessary 
to save the Republic long before it was adopted; yet it is not as 
the emancipator of some two or three
360
                                     millions of slaves that the 
American patriot cherishes the memory of Abraham Lincoln, but, 
aided by the loyal people, generals of rare merit, and troops of 
unsurpassed bravery and endurance, as the saviour of the American 
state, and the protector of modern civilization.  His 
anti-slavery policy served this end, and therefore was wise, but 
he adopted it with the greatest possible reluctance.

There were greater issues in the late war than negro slavery or 
negro freedom.  That was only an incidental issue, as the really 
great men of the Confederacy felt, who to save their cause were 
willing themselves at last to free and arm their own negroes, and 
perhaps were willing to do it even at first.  This fact alone 
proves that they had, or believed they had, a far more important 
cause than the preservation of negro slavery.  They fought for 
personal democracy, under the form of State sovereignty, against 
social democracy; for personal freedom and independence against 
social or humanitarian despotism; and so far their cause was as 
good as that against which they took up arms; and if they had or 
could have fought against that, without fighting at the same time 
against the territorial, the real American, the only civilized 
democracy, they
361
                would have succeeded.  It is not socialism nor 
abolitionism that has won; nor is it the North that has 
conquered.  The Union itself has won no victories over the South, 
and it is both historically and legally false to say that the 
South has been subjugated.  The Union has preserved itself and 
American civilization, alike for North and South, East and West.  
The armies that so often met in the shock of battle were not 
drawn up respectively by the North and the South, but by two 
rival democracies, to decide which of the two should rule the 
future.  They were the armies of two mutually antagonistic 
systems, and neither army was clearly and distinctly conscious of 
the cause for which it was shedding its blood; each obeyed 
instinctively a power stronger than itself, and which at best it 
but dimly discerned.  On both sides the cause was broader and 
deeper than negro slavery, and neither the proslavery men nor the 
abolitionists have won.  The territorial democracy alone has won, 
and won what will prove to be a final victory over the purely 
personal democracy, which had its chief seat in the Southern 
States, though by no means confined to them.  The danger to 
American democracy from that quarter is forever removed, and 
democracy a' la Rousseau has
362
                             received a terrible defeat 
throughout the world, though as yet it is far from being aware of 
it.

But in this world victories are never complete.  The socialistic 
democracy claims the victory which has been really won by the 
territorial democracy, as if it had been socialism, not 
patriotism, that fired the hearts and nerved the arms of the 
brave men led by McClellan, Grant, and Sherman.  The 
humanitarians are more dangerous in principle than the egoists, 
for they have the appearance of building on a broader and deeper 
foundation, of being more Christian, more philosophic, more 
generous and philanthropic; but Satan is never more successful 
than under the guise of an angel of light.  His favorite guise in 
modern times is that of philanthropy.  He is a genuine 
humanitarian, and aims to persuade the world that humanitarianism 
is Christianity, and that man is God; that the soft and charming 
sentiment of philanthropy is real Christian charity; and he dupes 
both individuals and nations, and makes them do his work, when 
they believe they are earnestly and most successfully doing the 
work of God.  Your leading abolitionists are as much affected by 
satanophany as your leading confederates, nor are they one whit 
more philosophical or less sophistical.  The one
363
                                                 loses the race, 
the other the individual, and neither has learned to apply 
practically that fundamental truth that there is never the 
general without the particular, nor the particular without the 
general, the race without individuals, nor individuals without 
the race.  The whole race was in Adam, and fell in him, as we are 
taught by the doctrine of original sin, or the sin of the race, 
and Adam was an individual, as we are taught in the fact that 
original sin was in him actual or personal sin.

The humanitarian is carried away by a vague generality, and loses 
men in humanity, sacrifices the rights of men in a vain endeavor 
to secure the rights of man, as your Calvinist or his brother 
Jansenist sacrifices the rights of nature in order to secure the 
freedom of grace.  Yesterday he agitated for the abolition of 
slavery, to-day he agitates for negro suffrage, negro equality, 
and announces that when be has secured that be will agitate for 
female suffrage and the equality of the sexes, forgetting or 
ignorant that the relation of equality subsists only between 
individuals of the same sex; that God made the man the head of 
the woman, and the woman for the man, not the man for the woman.  
Having obliterated all distinction of sex in politics, in social, 
in-
364
  dustrial, and domestic arrangements, he must go farther, and 
agitate for equality of property.  But since property, if 
recognized at all, will be unequally acquired and distributed, he 
must go farther still, and agitate for the total abolition of 
property, as an injustice, a grievous wrong, a theft, with 
M. Proudhon, or the Englishman Godwin.  It is unjust that one 
should have what another wants, or even more than another.  What 
right have you to ride in your coach or astride your spirited 
barb while I am forced to trudge on foot?  Nor can our 
humanitarian stop there.  Individuals are, and as long as there 
are individuals will be, unequal: some are handsomer and some are 
uglier, some wiser or sillier, more or less gifted, stronger or 
weaker, taller or shorter, stouter or thinner than others, and 
therefore some have natural advantages which others have not.  
There is inequality, therefore injustice, which can be remedied 
only by the abolition of all individualities, and the reduction 
of all individuals to the race, or humanity, man in general.  He 
can find no limit to his agitation this side of vague generality, 
which is no reality, but a pure nullity, for he respects no 
territorial or individual circumscriptions, and must regard 
creation itself as a blunder.  This is not fancy, for he has
365
gone very nearly as far as it is here shown, if logical, be must 
go.

The danger now is that the Union victory will, at home and 
abroad, be interpreted as a victory won in the interest of social 
or humanitarian democracy.  It was because they regarded the war 
waged on the side of the Union as waged in the interest of this 
terrible democracy, that our bishops and clergy sympathized so 
little with the Government in prosecuting it; not, as some 
imagined, because they were disloyal, hostile to American or 
territorial democracy, or not heartily in favor of freedom for 
all men, whatever their race or complexion.  They had no wish to 
see slavery prolonged, the evils of which they, better than any 
other class of men, knew, and more deeply deplored; none would 
have regretted more than they to have seen the Union broken up; 
but they held the socialistic or humanitarian democracy 
represented by Northern abolitionists as hostile alike to the 
Church and to civilization.  For the same reason that they were 
backward or reserved in their sympathy, all the humanitarian 
sects at home and abroad were forward and even ostentatious in 
theirs.  The Catholics feared the war might result in encouraging 
La Republiques democratique et sociale; the humanitarian sects 
366
trusted that it would.  If the victory of the Union should turn 
out to be a victory for the humanitarian democracy, the civilized 
world will have no reason to applaud it.

That there is some danger that for a time the victory will be 
taken as a victory for humanitarianism or socialism, it would be 
idle to deny.  It is so taken now, and the humanitarian party 
throughout the world are in ecstasies over it.  The party claim 
it.  The European Socialists and Red Republicans applaud it, and 
the Mazzinis and the Garibaldis inflict on us the deep 
humiliation of their congratulations.  A cause that can be 
approved by the revolutionary leaders of European Liberals must 
be strangely misunderstood, or have in it some infamous element.  
It is no compliment to a nation to receive the congratulations of 
men who assert not only people-king, but people-God; and those 
Americans who are delighted with them are worse enemies to the 
American democracy than ever were Jefferson Davis and his fellow 
conspirators, and more contemptible, as the swindler is more 
contemptible than the highwayman.

But it is probable the humanitarians have reckoned without their 
host.  Not they are the real victors.  When the smoke of battle 
has
367
    cleared away, the victory, it will be seen, has been won by 
the Republic, and that that alone has triumphed.  The 
abolitionists, in so far as they asserted the unity of the race 
and opposed slavery as a denial of that unity, have also won; but 
in so far as they denied the reality or authority of territorial 
and individual circumscriptions, followed a purely socialistic 
tendency, and sought to dissolve patriotism into a watery 
sentimentality called philanthropy, have in reality been 
crushingly defeated, as they will find when the late 
insurrectionary States are fully reconstructed.  The Southern or 
egoistical democrats, so far as they denied the unity and 
solidarity of the race, the rights of society over individuals, 
and the equal rights of each and every individual in face of the 
state, or the obligations of society to protect the weak and help 
the helpless, have been also defeated; but so far as they 
asserted personal or individual rights which society neither 
gives nor can take away, and so far as they asserted, not State 
sovereignty, but State rights, held independently of the General 
government, and which limit its authority and sphere of action, 
they share in the victory, as the future will prove.

European Jacobins, revolutionists, conspiring openly or secretly 
against all legitimate author-
368
                             ity, whether in Church or State, 
have no lot or part in the victory of the American people: not 
for them nor for men with their nefarious designs or mad dreams, 
have our brave soldiers fought, suffered and bled for four years 
of the most terrible war in modern times, and against troops as 
brave and as well led as themselves; not for them has the country 
sacrificed a million of lives, and contracted a debt of four 
thousand millions of dollars, besides the waste and destruction 
that it will take years of peaceful industry to repair.  They and 
their barbaric democracy have been defeated, and civilization has 
won its most brilliant victory in all history.  The American 
democracy has crushed, actually or potentially, every species of 
barbarism in the New World, asserted victoriously the state, and 
placed the government definitively on the side of legitimate 
authority, and made its natural association henceforth with all 
civilized governments--not with the revolutionary movements to 
overthrow them.  The American people will always be progressive 
as well as conservative; but they have learned a lesson, which 
they much needed against false democracy: civil war has taught 
them that "the sacred right of insurrection" is as much out of 
place in a democratic state as in an aristocratic or a mon-
369
                                                          archical 
state; and that the government should always be clothed with 
ample authority to arrest and punish whoever plots its 
destruction.  They must never be delighted again to have their 
government send a national ship to bring hither a noted traitor 
to his own sovereign as the nation's guest.  The people of the 
Northern States are hardly less responsible for the late 
rebellion than the people of the Southern States.  Their press 
had taught them to call every government a tyranny that refused 
to remain quiet while the traitor was cutting its throat or 
assassinating the nation, and they had nothing but mad 
denunciations of the Papal, the Austrian, and the Neapolitan 
governments for their severity against conspirators and traitors.  
But their own government has found it necessary for the public 
safety to be equally arbitrary, prompt, and severe, and they will 
most likely require it hereafter to co-operate with the 
governments of the Old World in advancing civilization, instead 
of lending all its moral support, as heretofore, to the Jacobins, 
revolutionists, socialists, and humanitarians, to bring back the 
reign of barbarism.

The tendency to individualism has been sufficiently checked by 
the failure of the rebellion, and no danger from the 
disintegrating 
370
               element, either in the particular State or in the 
United States, is henceforth to be apprehended.  But the tendency 
in the opposite direction may give the American state some 
trouble.  The tendency now is, as to the Union, consolidation, 
and as to the particular state, humanitarianism, socialism, or 
centralized democracy.  Yet this tendency, though it may do much 
mischief, will hardly become exclusive.  The States that seceded, 
when restored, will always, even in abandoning State sovereignty, 
resist it, and still assert State rights.  When these States are 
restored to their normal position, they will always be able to 
protect themselves against any encroachments on their special 
rights by the General government.  The constitution, in the 
distribution of the powers of government, provides the States 
severally with ample means to protect their individuality against 
the centralizing tendency of the General government, however 
strong it may be.

The war has, no doubt, had a tendency to strengthen the General 
government, and to cause the people, to a great extent, to look 
upon it as the supreme and exclusive national government, and to 
regard the several State governments as subordinate instead of 
co-ordinate governments.  It is not improbable that the 
Executive, since
371
                 the outbreak of the rebellion, has proceeded 
throughout on that supposition, and hence his extraordinary 
assumptions of power; but when once peace is fully re-established 
and the States have all resumed their normal position in the 
Union, every State will be found prompt enough to resist any 
attempt to encroach on its constitutional rights.  Its instinct 
of self-preservation will lead it to resist, and it will be 
protected by both its own judiciary and that of the United 
States.

The danger that the General government will usurp the rights of 
the States is far less than the danger that the Executive will 
usurp all the powers of Congress and the judiciary.  Congress, 
during the rebellion, clothed the President, as far as it could, 
with dictatorial powers, and these powers the Executive continues 
to exercise even after the rebellion is suppressed.  They were 
given and held under the rights of war, and for war purposes 
only, and expired by natural limitation when the war ceased; but 
the Executive forgets this, and, instead of calling Congress 
together and submitting the work of reconstruction of the States 
that seceded to its wisdom and authority, undertakes to 
reconstruct them himself, as if he were an absolute sovereign; 
372
and the people seem to like it.  He might and should, as 
commander-in-chief of the army and navy, govern them as military 
departments, by his lieutenants, till Congress could either 
create provisional civil governments for them or recognize them 
as self-governing States in the Union; but he has no right, under 
the constitution nor under the war power, to appoint civil 
governors, permanent or provisional; and every act he has done in 
regard to reconstruction is sheer usurpation, and done without 
authority and without the slightest plea of necessity.  His acts 
in this respect, even if wise and just in themselves, are 
inexcusable, because done by one who has no legal right to do 
them.  Yet his usurpation is apparently sustained by public 
sentiment, and a deep wound is inflicted on the constitution, 
which will be long in healing.

The danger in this respect is all the greater because it did not 
originate with the rebellion, but had manifested itself for a 
long time before.  There is a growing disposition on the part of 

Congress to throw as much of the business of government as 
possible into the hands of the Executive.  The patronage the 
Executive wields, even in times of peace, is so large that he has 
indirectly an almost supreme control
373
                                     over the legislative branch 
of the government.  For this, which is, and, if not checked will 
continue to be, a growing evil, there is no obvious remedy, 
unless the President is chosen for a longer term of office and 
made ineligible for a second term, and the mischievous doctrine 
of rotation in office is rejected as incompatible with the true 
interests of the public.  Here is matter for the consideration of 
the American statesman.  But as to the usurpations of the 
Executive in these unsettled times, they will be only temporary, 
and will cease when the States are all restored.  They are 
abuses, but only temporary abuses, and the Southern States, when 
restored to the Union, will resume their rights in their own 
sphere, as self-governing communities, and legalize or undo the 
unwarrantable acts of the Federal Executive.

The socialistic and centralizing tendency in the bosom of the 
individual States is the most dangerous, but it will not be able 
to become predominant; for philanthropy, unlike charity, does not 
begin at home, and is powerless unless it operates at a distance.  
In the States in which the humanitarian tendency is the 
strongest, the territorial democracy has its most effective 
organization.  Prior to the outbreak of the rebellion the 
American people had asserted
374
                             popular sovereignty, but had never 
rendered an account to themselves in what sense the people are or 
are not sovereign.  They had never distinguished the three sorts 
of democracy from one another, asked themselves which of the 
three is the distinctively American democracy.  For them, 
democracy was democracy, and those who saw dangers ahead sought 
to avoid them either by exaggerating one or the other of the two 
exclusive tendencies, or else by restraining democracy itself 
through restrictions on suffrage.  The latter class began to 
distrust universal suffrage, to lose faith in the people, and to 
dream of modifying the American constitution so as to make it 
conform more nearly to the English model.  The war has proved 
that the were wrong, for nothing is more certain than that the 
people have saved the national unity and integrity almost in 
spite of their government.  The General government either was not 
disposed or was afraid to take a decided stand against secession, 
till forced to do it by the people themselves.  No wise American 
can henceforth distrust American democracy.  The people may be 
trusted.  So much is settled.  But as the two extremes were 
equally democratic, as the secessionists acted in the name of 
popular sovereignty, and as the humanitarians
375
                                              were not unwilling 
to allow separation, and would not and did not engage in the war 
against secession for the sake of the Union and the integrity of 
the national domain, the conviction becomes irresistible that it 
was not democracy in the sense of either of the extremes that 
made the war and came out of it victorious; and hence the real 
American democracy must differ from them both, and is neither a 
personal nor a humanitarian, but a territorial democracy.  The 
true idea of American democracy thus comes out, for the first 
time, freed from the two extreme democracies which have been 
identified with it, and henceforth enters into the understandings 
as well as the hearts of the people.  The war has enlightened 
patriotism, and what was sentiment or instinct becomes reason--a 
well-defined, and clearly understood constitutional conviction.

In the several States themselves there are many things to prevent 
the socialistic tendency from becoming exclusive.  In the States 
that seceded socialism has never had a foothold, and will not 
gain it, for it is resisted by all the sentiments, convictions, 
and habits of the Southern people, and the Southern people will 
not be exterminated nor swamped by migrations either from the 
North or from Europe.  They are and
376
                                    always will be an 
agricultural people, and an agricultural people are and always 
will be opposed to socialistic dreams, unless unwittingly held 
for a moment to favor it in pursuit of some special object in 
which they take a passionate interest.  The worst of all policies 
is that of hanging, exiling, or disfranchising the wealthy 
landholders of the South, in order to bring up the poor and 
depressed whites, shadowed forth in the Executive proclamation of 
the 29th of May, 1865.  Of course that policy will not be carried 
out, and if the negroes are enfranchised, they will always vote 
with the wealthy landholding class, and aid them in resisting all 
socialistic tendencies.  The humanitarians will fail for the want 
of a good social grievance against which they can declaim.

In the New England States the humanitarian tendency is strong as 
a speculation, but only in relation to objects at a distance.  It 
is aided much by the congregational constitution of their 
religion; yet it is weak at home, and is resisted practically by 
the territorial division of power.  New England means 
Massachusetts, and nowhere is the subdivision of the powers of 
government carried further, or the constitution of the 
territorial democracy more complete, than in that State.  
Philanthropy sel-
377
                dom works in private against private vices and 
evils: it is effective only against public grievances, and the 
farther they are from home and the less its right to interfere 
with them, the more in earnest and the more effective for evil 
does it become.  Its nature is to mind every one's business but 
its own.  But now that slavery is abolished, there is nowhere in 
the United States a social grievance of magnitude enough to 
enlist any considerable number of the people, even of 
Massachusetts, in a movement to redress it.  Negro 
enfranchisement is a question of which the humanitarians can make 
something and they will make the most of it; but as it is a 
question that each State will soon settle for itself, it will not 
serve their purpose of prolonged agitation.  They could not and 
never did carry away the nation, even on the question of slavery 
itself, and abolitionism had comparatively little direct 
influence in abolishing slavery; and the exclusion of negro 
suffrage can never be made to appear to the American people as 
any thing like so great a grievance as was slavery.

Besides, in all the States that did not secede, Catholics are a 
numerous and an important portion of the population.  Their 
increasing numbers, wealth, and education secure them, as much
378
as the majority may dislike their religion, a constantly 
increasing influence, and it is idle to leave them out in 
counting the future of the country.  They will, in a very few 
years, be the best and most thoroughly educated class of the 
American people; and, aside from their religion, or, rather, in 
consequence of their religion, the most learned, enlightened, and 
intelligent portion of the American population; and as much as 
they have disliked the abolitionists, they have, in the army and 
elsewhere, contributed their full share to the victory the nation 
has won.  The best things written on the controversy have been 
written by Catholics, and Catholics are better fitted by their 
religion to comprehend the real character of the American 
constitution than any other class of Americans, the moment they 
study it in the light of their own theology.  The American 
constitution is based on that of natural society, on the 
solidarity of the race, and the difference between natural 
society and the church or Christian society is, that the one is 
initial and the other teleological.  The law of both is the same; 
Catholics, as such, must resist both extremes, because each is 
exclusive, and whatever is exclusive or one-sided is uncatholic.  
If they have been backward in their sympathy with
379
                                                  the government, 
it has been through their dislike of the puritanic spirit and the 
humanitarian or socialistic elements they detected in the 
Republican party, joined with a prejudice against political and 
social negro equality.  But their church everywhere opposes the 
socialistic movements of the age, all movements in behalf of 
barbarism, and they may always be counted on to resist the 
advance of the socialistic democracy.  If the country has had 
reason to complain of some of them in the late war, it will have, 
in the future, far stronger reason to be grateful; not to them, 
indeed, for the citizen owes his life to his country, but to 
their religion, which has been and is the grand protectress of 
modern society and civilization.

>From the origin of the government there has been a tendency to 
the extension of suffrage, and to exclude both birth and private 
property as bases of political rights or franchises.  This 
tendency has often been justified on the ground that the elective 
franchise is a natural right; which is not true, because the 
elective franchise is political power, and political power is 
always a civil trust, never a natural right, and the state judges 
for itself to whom it will or will not confide the trust; but 
there can be no doubt that it is a normal tendency, and in strict
380
accordance with the constitution of American civil society, which 
rests on the unity of the race, and public instead of private 
property.  All political distinctions founded on birth, race, or 
private wealth are anomalies in the American system, and are 
necessarily eliminated by its normal developments.  To contend 
that none but property-holders may vote, or none but persons of a 
particular race may be enfranchised, is unamerican and contrary, 
to the order of civilization the New World is developing.  The 
only qualification for the elective franchise the American system 
can logically insist on is that the elector belong to the 
territorial people--that is, be a natural-born or a naturalized 
citizen, be a major in full possession of his natural faculties, 
and unconvicted of any infamous offence.  The State is free to 
naturalize foreigners or not, and under such restrictions as it 
judges proper; but, having naturalized them, it must treat them 
as standing on the same footing with natural-born citizens.

The naturalization question is one of great national importance.  
The migration of foreigners hither has added largely to the 
national population, and to the national wealth and resources, 
but less, perhaps, to the development of patriotism, the purity 
of elections, or the
381
                     wisdom and integrity of the government.  It 
is impossible that there should be perfect harmony between the 
national territorial democracy and individuals born, brought up, 
and formed under a political order in many respects widely 
different from it; and there is no doubt that the democracy, in 
its objectionable sense, has been greatly strengthened by the 
large infusion of naturalized citizens.  There can be no question 
that, if the laboring classes, in whom the national sentiment is 
usually the strongest, had been composed almost wholly of native 
Americans, instead of being, as they were, at least in the 
cities, large towns, and villages, composed almost exclusively of 
persons foreign born, the Government would have found far less 
difficulty in filling up the depleted ranks of its armies.  But 
to leave so large a portion of the actual population as the 
foreign born residing in the country without the rights of 
citizens, would have been a far graver evil, and would, in the 
late struggle, have given the victory to secession.  There are 
great national advantages derived from the migration hither of 
foreign labor, and if the migration be encouraged or permitted, 
naturalization on easy and liberal terms is the wisest, the best, 
and only safe policy.  The children of foreign-born parents are 
real Americans.

382
Emigration has, also, a singular effect in developing the latent 
powers of the emigrant, and the children of emigrants are usually 
more active, more energetic than the children of the older 
inhabitants of the country among whom they settle.  Some of our 
first men in civil life have been sons of foreign-born parents, 
and so are not a few of our greatest and most successful 
generals.  The most successful of our merchants have been 
foreign-born.  The same thing has been noticed elsewhere, 
especially in the emigration of the French Huguenots to Holland, 
Germany, England, and Ireland.  The immigration of so many 
millions from the Old World has, no doubt, given to the American 
people much of their bold, energetic, and adventurous character, 
and made them a superior people on the whole to what they would 
otherwise have been.  This has nothing to do with superiority or 
inferiority of race or blood, but is a natural effect of breaking 
men away from routine, and throwing them back on their own 
individual energies and personal resources.

Resistance is offered to negro suffrage, and justly too, till the 
recently emancipated slaves have served an apprenticeship to 
freedom; but that resistance cannot long stand before the onward 
progress of American democracy, which
383
                                      asserts equal rights for 
all, and not for a race or class only.  Some would confine 
suffrage to landholders, or, at least, to property-holders; but 
that is inconsistent with the American idea, and is a relic of 
the barbaric constitution which founds power on private instead 
of public wealth.  Nor are property-owners a whit more likely to 
vote for the public good than are those who own no property but 
their own labor.  The men of wealth, the business men, 
manufacturers and merchants, bankers and brokers, are the men who 
exert the worst influence on government in every country, for 
they always strive to use it as an instrument of advancing their 
own private interests.  They act on the beautiful maxim, "Let 
government take care of the rich, and the rich will take care of 
the poor," instead of the far safer maxim, "Let government take 
care of the weak, the strong can take care of themselves." 
Universal suffrage is better than restricted suffrage, but even 
universal suffrage is too weak to prevent private property from 
having an undue political influence.

The evils attributed to universal suffrage are not inseparable 
from it, and, after all, it is doubtful if it elevates men of an 
inferior class to those elevated by restricted suffrage.  The 
Congress of 1860, or of 1862. was a fair average
384
                                                 of the wisdom, 
the talent, and the virtue of the country, and not inferior to 
that of 1776, or that of l789; and the Executive during the 
rebellion was at least as able and as efficient as it was during 
the war of 1812, far superior to that of Great Britain, and not 
inferior to that of France during the Crimean war.  The Crimean 
war developed and placed in high command, either with the English 
or the French, no generals equal to Halleck, Grant, and Sherman, 
to say nothing of others.  The more aristocratic South proved 
itself, in both statesmanship and generalship, in no respect 
superior to the territorial democracy of the North and West.

The great evil the country experiences is not from universal 
suffrage, but from what may be called rotation in office.  The 
number of political aspirants is so great that, in the Northern 
and Western States especially, the representatives in Congress 
are changed every two or four years, and a member, as soon as he 
has acquired the experience necessary to qualify him for his 
position, is dropped, not through the fickleness of his 
constituency, but to give place to another whose aid had been 
necessary to his first or second election.  Employes are 
"rotated," not because they are incapable or unfaithful, but 
because there are others who want their places.
385
                                                 This is all bad, 
but it springs not from universal suffrage, but from a wrong 
public opinion, which might be corrected by the press, but which 
is mainly formed by it.  There is, no doubt, a due share of 
official corruption, but not more than elsewhere, and that would 
be much diminished by increasing the salaries of the public 
servants, especially in the higher offices of the government, 
both General and State.  The pay to the lower officers and 
employes of the government, and to the privates and 
non-commissioned officers in the army, is liberal, and, in 
general, too liberal; but the pay of the higher grades in both 
the civil and military service is too low, and relatively far 
lower than it was when the government was first organized.

The worst tendency in the country, and which is not encouraged at 
all by the territorial democracy, manifests itself in hostility 
to the military spirit and a standing army.  The depreciation of 
the military spirit comes from the humanitarian or sentimental 
democracy, which, like all sentimentalisms, defeats itself, and 
brings about the very evils it seeks to avoid.  The hostility to 
standing armies is inherited from England, and originated in the 
quarrels between king and parliament, and is a 
386
                                               striking evidence 
of the folly of that bundle of antagonistic forces called the 
British constitution.  In feudal times most of the land was held 
by military service, and the reliance of government was on the 
feudal militia; but no real progress was made in eliminating 
barbarism till the national authority got a regular army at its 
command, and became able to defend itself against its enemies.  
It is very doubtful if English civilization has not, upon the 
whole, lost more than it has gained by substituting parliamentary 
for royal supremacy, and exchanging the Stuarts for the Guelfs.

No nation is a living, prosperous nation that has lost the 
military spirit, or in which the profession of the soldier is not 
held in honor and esteem; and a standing army of reasonable size 
is public economy.  It absorbs in its ranks a class of men who 
are worth more there than anywhere else; it creates honorable 
places for gentlemen or the sons of gentlemen without wealth, in 
which they can serve both themselves and their country.  Under a 
democratic government the most serious embarrassment to the state 
is its gentlemen, or persons not disposed or not fitted to 
support themselves by their own hands, more necessary in a 
democratic government than in any other.  The civil
387
                                                    service, 
divinity, law, and medicine, together with literature, science, 
and art, cannot absorb the whole of this ever-increasing class, 
and the army and navy would be an economy and a real service to 
the state were they maintained only for the sake of the rank and 
position they give to their officers, and the wholesome influence 
these officers would exert on society and the politics of the 
country--this even in case there were no wars or apprehension of 
wars.  They supply an element needed in all society, to sustain 
in it the chivalric and heroic spirit, perpetually endangered by 
the mercantile and political spirit, which has in it always 
something low and sordid.

But wars are inevitable, and when a nation has no surrounding 
nations to fight, it will, as we have just proved, fight itself.  
When it can have no foreign war, it will get up a domestic war; 
for the human animal, like all animals, must work off in some way 
its fighting humor, and the only sure way of maintaining peace is 
always to be prepared for war.  A regular standing army of forty 
thousand men would have prevented the Mexican war, and an army of 
fifty thousand well-disciplined and efficient troops at the 
command of the President on his inauguration in March, 1861, 
would have pre-
388
              vented the rebellion, or have instantly suppressed 
it.  The cost of maintaining a land army of even a hundred 
thousand men, and a naval force to correspond, would have been, 
in simple money value, only a tithe of what the rebellion has 
cost the nation, to say nothing of the valuable lives that have 
been sacrificed for the losses on the rebel side, as well as 
those on the side of the government, are equally to be counted.  
The actual losses to the country have been not less than six or 
eight thousand millions of dollars, or nearly one-half the 
assessed value of the whole property of the United States 
according to the census returns of 1860, and which has only been 
partially cancelled by actual increase of property since.  To 
meet the interest on the debt incurred will require a heavier sum 
to be raised annually by taxation, twice over, without 
discharging a cent of the principal, than would have been 
necessary to maintain an army and navy adequate to the protection 
of peace and the prevention of the rebellion.

The rebellion is now suppressed, and if the government does not 
blunder much more in its civil efforts at pacification than it 
did in its military operations, before 1868 things will settle 
down into their normal order; but a regular army--not militia or 
volunteers, who are 
389
                    too expensive--of at least a hundred thousand 
men of all arms, and a navy nearly as large as that of England or 
France, will be needed as a peace establishment.  The army of a 
hundred thousand men must form a cadre of an army of three times 
that number, which will be necessary to place the army on a war 
footing.  Less will answer neither for peace nor war, for the 
nation has, in spite of herself, to maintain henceforth the rank 
of a first-class military and maritime power, and take a leading 
part in political movements of the civilized world, and, to a 
great extent, hold in her hand the peace of Europe.

Canning boasted that be had raised up the New World to redress 
the balance of the Old: a vain boast, for he simply weakened 
Spain and gave the hegemony of Europe to Russia, which the 
Emperor of the French is trying, by strengthening Italy and 
Spain, and by a French protectorate in Mexico, to secure to 
France, both in the Old World and the New--a magnificent dream, 
but not to be realized.  His uncle judged more wisely when he 
sold Louisiana, left the New World to itself, and sought only to 
secure to France the hegemony of the Old.  But the hegemony of 
the New World henceforth belongs to the United States, and she 
will have
390
          a potent voice in adjusting the balance of power even 
in Europe.  To maintain this position, which is imperative on 
her, she must always have a large armed force, either on foot or 
in reserve, which she can call out and put on a war footing at 
short notice.  The United States must henceforth be a great 
military and naval power, and the old hostility to a standing 
army and the old attempt to bring the military into disrepute 
must be abandoned, and the country yield to its destiny.

Of the several tendencies mentioned, the humanitarian tendency, 
egoistical at the South, detaching the individual from the race 
and socialistic at the North, absorbing the individual in the 
race, is the most dangerous.  The egoistical form is checked, 
sufficiently weakened by the defeat of the rebels; but the social 
form believes that it has triumphed, and that individuals are 
effaced in society, and the States in the Union.  Against this, 
more especially should public opinion and American statesmanship 
be now directed, and territorial democracy and the division of 
the powers of government be asserted and vigorously maintained.  
The danger is that while this socialistic form of democracy is 
conscious of itself, the territorial democracy has not yet 
arrived, as the Germans
391
                        say, at self 
consciousness--selbsbewusstseyn--and operates only instinctively.  
All the dominant theories and sentimentalities are against it, 
and it is only Providence that can sustain it.




392
CHAPTER XV.

DESTINY-POLITICAL AND RELIGIOUS.


It has been said in the Introduction to this essay that every 
living nation receives from Providence a special work or mission 
in the progress of society, to accomplish which is its destiny, 
or the end for which it exists; and that the special mission of 
the United States is to continue and complete in the political 
order the Graeco-Roman civilization.

Of all the states or colonies on this continent, the American 
Republic alone has a destiny, or the ability to add any thing to 
the civilization of the race.  Canada and the other British 
Provinces, Mexico and Central America, Columbia and Brazil, and 
the rest of the South American States, might be absorbed in the 
United States without being missed by the civilized world.  They 
represent no idea, and the work of civilization could go on 
without them as well as with them.  If they keep up with the 
progress of civilization, it is all that can be expected of them.  
France, England, Germany, and Italy might absorb the rest of 
Europe, and
393
            all Asia and Africa, without withdrawing a single 
laborer from the work of advancing the civilization of the race; 
and it is doubtful if these nations themselves can severally or 
jointly advance it much beyond the point reached by the Roman 
Empire, except in abolishing slavery and including in the 
political people the whole territorial people.  They can only 
develop and give a general application to the fundamental 
principles of the Roman constitution.  That indeed is much, but 
it adds no new element nor new combination of preexisting 
elements.  But nothing of this can be said of the United States.

In the Graeco-Roman civilization is found the state proper, and 
the great principle of the territorial constitution of power, 
instead of the personal or the genealogical, the patriarchal or 
the monarchical; and yet with true civil or political principles 
it mixed up nearly all the elements of the barbaric constitution.  
The gentile system of Rome recalls the patriarchal, and the 
relation that subsisted between the patron and his clients has a 
striking resemblance to that which subsists between the feudal 
lord and his retainers, and may have had the same origin.  The 
three tribes, Ramnes, Quirites, and Luceres, into which the Roman
394
people were divided before the rise of the plebs, may have been, 
as Niebuhr contends, local, not genealogical, in their origin, 
but they were not strictly territorial distinctions, and the 
division of each tribe into a hundred houses or gentes was not 
local, but personal, if not, as the name implies, genealogical.  
No doubt the individuals or families composing the house or gens 
were not all of kindred blood, for the Oriental custom of 
adoption, so frequent with our North American Indians, and with 
all people distributed into tribes, septs, or clans, obtained 
with the Romans.  The adopted member was considered a child of 
the house, and took its name and inherited its goods.  Whether, 
as Niebuhr maintains, all the free gentiles of the three tribes 
were called patres or patricians or whether the term was 
restricted to the heads of houses, it is certain that the head of 
the house represented it in the senate, and the vote in the 
curies was by houses, not by individuals en masse.  After all, 
practically the Roman senate was hardly less an estate than the 
English house of lords, for no one could sit in it unless a 
landed proprietor and of noble blood.  The plebs, though outside 
of the political people proper, as not being included in the 
three tribes, when they came to be a
395
                                     power in the republic under 
the emperors, and the old distinction of plebs and patricians was 
forgotten, were an estate, and not a local or territorial people.

The republican element was in the fact that the land, which gave 
the right to participate in political power, was the domain of 
the state, and the tenant held it from the state.  The domain was 
vested in the state, not in the senator nor the prince, and was 
therefore respublica, not private property--the first grand leap 
of the human race from barbarism.  In all other respects the 
Roman constitution was no more republican than the feudal.  
Athens went farther than Rome, and introduced the principle of 
territorial democracy.  The division into demes or wards, whence 
comes the word democracy, was a real territorial division, not 
personal nor genealogical.  And if the equality of all men was 
not recognized, all who were included in the political class 
stood on the same footing.  Athens and other Greek cities, though 
conquered by Rome, exerted after their conquest a powerful 
influence on Roman civilization, which became far more democratic 
under the emperors than it had been under the patrician senate, 
which the assassins of Julius Caesar, and the superannuated 
conservative party they
396
                        represented, tried so hard to preserve.  
The senate and the consulship were opened to the representatives 
of the great plebeian houses, and the provincials were clothed 
with the rights of Roman citizens, and uniform laws were 
established throughout the empire.

The grand error, as has already been said, of the Graeco-Roman or 
gentile civilization, was in its denial or ignorance of the unity 
of the human race, as well as the Unity of God, and in its 
including in the state only a particular class of the territorial 
people, while it held all the rest as slaves, though in different 
degrees of servitude.  It recognized and sustained a privileged 
class, a ruling order; and if, as subsequently did the Venetian 
aristocracy, it recognized democratic equality within that order, 
it held all outside of it to be less than men and without 
political rights.  Practically, power was an attribute of birth 
and of private wealth.  Suffrage was almost universal among 
freemen, but down almost to the Empire, the people voted by 
orders, and were counted, not numerically, but by the rank of the 
order, and the comitia curiata could always carry the election 
over the comitia centuriata, and thus power remained always in 
the hands of the rich and noble few.

The Roman Law, as digested by jurists under
397
                                            Justinian in the 
sixth Century, indeed, recognizes the unity of the race, asserts 
the equality of all men by the natural law, and undertakes to 
defend slavery on principles not incompatible with that equality.  
It represents it as a commutation of the punishment of death, 
which the emperor has the right to inflict on captives taken in 
war, to perpetual servitude; and as servitude is less severe than 
death, slavery was really a proof of imperial clemency.  But it 
has never yet been proved that the emperor has the right under 
the natural law to put captives taken even in a just war to 
death, and the Roman poet himself bids us "humble the proud, but 
spare the submissive."  In a just war the emperor may kill on the 
battle-field those in arms against him, but the jus gentium, as 
now interpreted by the jurisprudence of every civilized nation, 
does not allow him to put them to death after they have ceased 
resistance, have thrown down their arms, and surrendered.  But 
even if it did, it gives him a right only over the persons 
captured, not over their innocent children, and therefore no 
right to establish hereditary slavery, for the child is not 
punishable for the offences of the parent.  The law, indeed, 
assumed that the captive ceased to exist as a person and treated 
him as a thing, or mere property
398
                                 of the conqueror, and being 
property, he could beget only property, which would accrue only 
to his owner.  But there is no power in heaven or earth that can 
make a person a thing, a mere piece of merchandise, and it is 
only by a clumsy fiction, or rather by a bare-faced lie, that the 
law denies the slave his personality and treats him as a thing.  
I the unity of all men had been clearly seen and vividly felt, 
the law would never have attempted to justify perpetual slavery 
on the ground of its penal character, or indeed on any ground 
whatever.  All men are born under the law of nature with equal 
rights, and the civil law can justly deprive no man of his 
liberty, but for a crime, committed by him personally, that 
justly forfeits his liberty to society.

These defects of the Graeco-Roman civilization the European 
nations have in part remedied, and may completely remedy.  They 
can carry out practically the Christian dogma of the unity of the 
human race, abolish slavery in every form, make all men equal 
before the law, and the political people commensurate with the 
territorial people.  Indeed, France has already done it.  She has 
abolished slavery, villenage, serfage, political aristocracy, 
asserted the equality of all men before the law, vindicated the
399
sovereignty of the people, and established universal suffrage, 
complete social and territorial democracy.  The other nations may 
do as much, but hardly can any of them do more or advance 
farther.  Yet in France, territorial democracy the most complete 
results only in establishing the most complete imperial 
centralism, usually called Caesarism.

The imperial constitution of France recognizes that the emperor 
reigns "by the grace of God and the will of the nation," and 
therefore, that by the grace of God and the will of the nation he 
may cease to reign; but while he reigns he is supreme, and his 
will is law.  The constitution imposes no real or effective 
restraint on his power: while he sits upon the throne he is 
practically France, and the ministers are his clerks; the council 
of state, the senate, and the legislative body are merely his 
agents in governing the nation.  This may, indeed, be changed, 
but only to substitute for imperial centralism democratic 
centralism, which were no improvement, or to go back to the 
system of antagonisms, checks and balances, called 
constitutionalism, or parliamentary government, of which Great 
Britain is the model, and which were a return toward barbarism, 
or mediaeval feudalism.

400
The human race has its life in God, and tends to realize in all 
orders the Divine Word or Logos, which is Ionic itself, and the 
principle of all conciliation, of the dialectic union of all 
opposites or extremes.  Mankind will be logical; and the worst of 
all tyrannies is that which forbids them to draw from their 
principles their last logical consequences, or that prohibits 
them the free explication and application of the Divine Idea, in 
which consists their life, their progress.  Such tyranny strikes 
at the very existence of society, and wars against the reality of 
things.  It is supremely sophistical, and its success is death; 
for the universe in its constitution is supremely logical, and 
man, individually and socially, is rational.  God is the author 
and type of all created things; and all creatures, each in its 
order, imitate or copies the Divine Being, who is intrinsically 
Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, principle, medium, and end.  The Son 
or Word is the medium, which unites the two extremes, whence God 
is living God a real, active, living Being--living, concrete, not 
abstract or dead unity, like the unity of old Xenophanes, 
Plotinus, and Proclus.  In the Holy Trinity is the principle and 
prototype of all society, and what is called the solidarity of 
the race is only the outward
401
                             expression, or copy in the external 
order, of what theologians term the circumsession of the three 
Divine Persons of the Godhead.

Now, human society, when it copies the Divine essence and nature 
either in the distinction of persons alone, or in the unity 
alone, is sophistical, and wants the principle of all life and 
reality.  It sins against God. and must fail of its end.  The 
English system, which is based on antagonistic elements, on 
opposites, without the middle term that conciliates them, unites 
them, and makes them dialectically one, copies the Divine model 
in its distinctions alone, which, considered alone, are opposites 
or contraries.  It denies, if Englishmen could but see it, the 
unity of God.  The French, or imperial system, which excludes the 
extremes, instead of uniting them, denies all opposites, instead 
of conciliating them--denies the distinctions in the model, and 
copies only the unity, which is the supreme sophism called 
pantheism.  The English constitution has no middle term, and the 
French no extremes, and each in its way denies the Divine 
Trinity, the original basis and type of the syllogism.  The human 
race can be contented with neither, for neither allows it free 
scope for its inherent life and activity.  The English system 
tends to pure individualism;
402
the French to pure socialism or despotism, each endeavoring to 
suppress an element of the one living and indissoluble TRUTH.

This is not fancy, is not fine-spun speculation, or cold and 
lifeless abstraction, but the highest theological and 
philosophical truth, without which there were no reason, no man, 
no society; for God is the first principle of all being, all 
existence, all science, all life, and it is in Him that we live 
and move and have our being.  God is at the beginning, in the 
middle, and at the end of all things--the universal principle, 
medium, and end; and no truth can be denied without His existence 
being directly or indirectly impugned.  In a deeper sense than is 
commonly understood is it true that nisi Dominus aedificaverit 
domum, in vanum laboraverunt qui aedificant eam.  The English 
constitution is composed of contradictory elements, incapable of 
reconciliation, and each element is perpetually struggling with 
the others for the mastery.  For a long time the king labored, 
intrigued, and fought to free himself from the thraldom in which 
he was held by the feudal barons; in 1688 the aristocracy and 
people united and humbled the crown; and now the people are at 
work seeking to sap both the crown and the nobles.  The state is 
consti-
403
      tuted to nobody's satisfaction; and though all may unite in 
boasting its excellences, all are at work trying to alter or 
amend it.  The work of constituting the state with the English is 
ever beginning, never ending.  Hence the eternal clamor for 
parliamentary reform.

Great Britain and other European states may sweep away all that 
remains of feudalism, include the whole territorial people with 
the equal rights of all in the state or political people, concede 
to birth and wealth no political rights, but they will by so 
doing only establish either imperial centralism, as has been done 
in France, or democratic centralism, clamored for, conspired for, 
and fought for by the revolutionists of Europe.  The special 
merit of the American system is not in its democracy alone, as 
too many at home and abroad imagine; but along with its democracy 
in the division of the powers of government, between a General 
government and particular State governments, which are not 
antagonistic governments, for they act on different matters, and 
neither is nor can be subordinated to the other.

Now, this division of power, which decentralizes the government 
without creating mutually hostile forces, can hardly be 
introduced into any European state.  There may be a
404
                                                    union of 
states in Great Britain, in Germany, in Italy, perhaps in Spain, 
and Austria is laboring hard to effect it in her heterogeneous 
empire; but the union possible in any of them is that of a Bund 
or confederation, like the Swiss or German Bund, similar to what 
the secessionists in the United States so recently attempted and 
have so signally failed to establish.  An intelligent Confederate 
officer remarked that their Confederacy had not been in operation 
three months before it became evident that the principle on 
which it was founded, if not rejected, would insure its defeat.  
It was that principle of State sovereignty, for which the States 
seceded, more than the superior resources and numbers of the 
Government, that caused the collapse of the Confederacy.  The 
numbers were relatively about equal, and the military resources 
of the Confederacy were relatively not much inferior to those of 
the Government.  So at least the Confederate leaders thought, and 
they knew the material resources of the Government as well as 
their own, and had calculated them with as much care and accuracy 
as any men could.  Foreign powers also, friendly as well as 
unfriendly, felt certain that the secessionists would gain their 
independence, and so did a large part of the people even of the 
loyal States.
405
               The failure is due to the disintegrating principle 
of State sovereignty, the very principle of the Confederacy.  The 
war has proved that united states are, other things being equal, 
an overmatch for confederated states.

The European states must unite either as equals or as unequals.  
As equals, the union can be only a confederacy, a sort of 
Zollverein, in which each state retains its individual 
sovereignty; if as unequals, then someone among them will aspire 
to the hegemony, and you have over again the Athenian 
Confederation, formed at the conclusion of the Persian war, and 
its fate.  A union like the American cannot be created by a 
compact, or by the exercise of supreme power.  The Emperor of the 
French cannot erect the several Departments of France into 
states, and divide the powers of government between them as 
individual and as united states.  They would necessarily hold 
from the imperial government, which, though it might exercise a 
large part of its functions through them, would remain, as now, 
the supreme central government, from which all governmental 
powers emanate, as our President is apparently attempting, in his 
reconstruction policy, to make the government of the United 
States.  The elements of a state constituted like the American
406
                                                               do 
not exist in any European nation, nor in the constitution of 
European society; and the American constitution would have been 
impracticable even here had not Providence so ordered it that the 
nation was born with it, and has never known any other.

Rome recognized the necessity of the federal principle, and 
applied it in the best way she could.  At first it was a single 
tribe or people distributed into distinct gentes or houses; after 
the Sabine war, a second tribe was added on terms of equality, 
and the state was dual, composed of two tribes, the Ramnes and 
the Tities or Quirites, and, afterward, in the time of Tullus 
Hostilius, were added the Lucertes or Luceres, making the 
division into three ruling tribes, each divided into one hundred 
houses or gentes.  Each house in each tribe was represented by 
its chief or decurion in the senate, making the number of 
senators exactly three hundred, at which number the senate was 
fixed.  Subsequently was added, by Ancus, the plebs, who remained 
without authority or share in the government of the city of Rome 
itself, though they might aspire to the first rank in the allied 
cities.  The division into tribes, and the division of the tribes 
into gentes or houses, and the vote in the state by tribes, and 
in the tribes by houses, ef-
407
                           fectually excluded democratic 
centralism; but the division was not a division of the powers of 
government between two co-ordinate governments, for the senate 
had supreme control, like the British parliament, over all 
matters, general and particular.

The establishment, after the secession of the plebs, of the 
tribunitial veto, which gave the plebeians a negative power in 
the state, there was an incipient division of the powers of 
government; but only a division between the positive and negative 
powers, not between the general and the particular.  The power 
accorded to the plebs, or commons, as Niebuhr calls them--who is, 
perhaps, too fond of explaining the early constitution of Rome by 
analogies borrowed from feudalism, and especially from the 
constitution of his native Ditmarsch--was simply an obstructive 
power; and when it, by development, became a positive power, it 
absorbed all the powers of government, and created the Empire.

There was, indeed, a nearer approach to the division of powers in 
the American system, between imperial Rome and her allied or 
confederated municipalities.  These municipalities, modelled 
chiefly after that of Rome, were elective, and had the management 
of their own local affairs; but their local powers were not 
co-ordi-
408
       inate in their own sphere with those exercised by the 
Roman municipality, but subordinate and dependent.  The senate 
had the supreme power over them, and they held their rights 
subject to its will.  They were formally, or virtually, 
subjugated states, to which the Roman senate, and afterward the 
Roman emperors, left the form of the state and the mere shadow of 
freedom.  Rome owed much to her affecting to treat them as allies 
rather than as subjects, and at first these municipal 
organizations secured the progress of civilization in the 
provinces; but at a later period, under the emperors, they served 
only the imperial treasury, and were crushed by the taxes imposed 
and the contributions levied on them by the fiscal agents of the 
empire.  So heavy were the fiscal burdens imposed on the 
burgesses, if the term may be used, that it needed an imperial 
edict to compel them to enter the municipal government; and it 
became, under the later emperors, no uncommon thing for free 
citizens to sell themselves into slavery, to escape the fiscal 
burdens imposed.  There are actually imperial edicts extant 
forbidden freemen to sell themselves as slaves.  Thus ended the 
Roman federative system, and it is difficult to discover in 
Europe the elements of a federative system that could have a 
more favorable result.

409
Now, the political destiny or mission of the United States is, in 
common with the European nations, to eliminate the barbaric 
elements retained by the Roman constitution, and specially to 
realize that philosophical division of the powers of government 
which distinguish it from both imperial and democratic centralism 
on the one hand, and, on the other, from the checks and balances 
or organized antagonisms which seek to preserve liberty by 
obstructing the exercise of power.  No greater problem in 
statesmanship remains to be solved, and no greater contribution 
to civilization to be made.  Nowhere else than in this New World, 
and in this New World only in the United States, can this problem 
be solved, or this contribution be made, and what the 
Graeco-Roman republic began be completed.

But the United States have a religious as well as a political 
destiny, for religion and politics go together.  Church and 
state, as governments, are separate indeed, but the principles on 
which the state is founded have their origin and ground in the 
spiritual order--in the principles revealed or affirmed by 
religion--and are inseparable from them.  There is no state 
without God, any more than there is a church without Christ or 
the Incarnation.  An atheist may be a politician, but if there 
were
410
     no God there could be no politics. theological principles 
are the basis of political principles.  The created universe is a 
dialectic whole, distinct but inseparable from its Creator, and 
all its parts cohere and are essential to one another.  All has 
its origin and prototype in the Triune God, and throughout 
expresses unity in triplicity and triplicity in unity, without 
which there is no real being and no actual or possible life.  
Every thing has its principle, medium, and end.  Natural society 
is initial, civil government is medial, the church is 
teleological, but the three are only distinctions in one 
indissoluble whole.

Man, as we have seen, lives by communion with God through the 
Divine creative act, and is perfected or completed only through 
the Incarnation, in Christ, the Word made flesh.  True, he 
communes with God through his kind, and through external nature, 
society in which he is born and reared, and property through 
which he derives sustenance for his body; but these are only 
media of his communion with God, the source of life--not either 
the beginning or the end of his communion.  They have no life in 
themselves, since their being is in God, and, of themselves, can 
impart none.  They are in the order of second causes, and second
411
causes, without the first cause, are nought.  Communion which 
stops with them, which takes them as the principle and end, 
instead of media, as they are, is the communion of death, not of 
life.  As religion includes all that relates to communion with 
God, it must in some form be inseparable from every living act of 
man, both individually and socially; and, in the long run, men 
must conform either their politics to their religion or their 
religion to their politics.  Christianity is constantly at work, 
moulding political society in its own image and likeness, and 
every political system struggles to harmonize Christianity with 
itself.  If, then, the United States have a political destiny, 
they have a religious destiny inseparable from it.

The political destiny of the United States is to conform the 
state to the order of reality, or, so to speak, to the Divine 
Idea in creation.  Their religious destiny is to render 
practicable and to realize the normal relations between church 
and state, religion and politics, as concreted in the life of the 
nation.

In politics, the United States are not realizing a political 
theory of any sort whatever.  They, on the contrary, are 
successfully refuting all political theories, making away with 
them, and establishing the state--not on a theory, not
412
                                                       on an 
artificial basis or a foundation laid by human reason or will, 
but on reality, the eternal and immutable principles in relation 
to which man is created.  They are doing the same in regard to 
religious theories.  Religion is not a theory, a subjective view, 
an opinion, but is, objectively, at once a principle, a law, and 
a fact, and, subjectively, it is, by the aid of God's grace, 
practical conformity to what is universally true and real.  The 
United States, in fulfilment of their destiny, are making as sad 
havoc with religious theories as with political theories, and are 
pressing on with irresistible force to the real or the Divine 
order which is expressed in the Christian mysteries, which exists 
independent of man's understanding and will, and which man can 
neither make nor unmake.

The religious destiny of the United States is not to create a new 
religion nor to found a new church.  All real religion is 
catholic, and is neither new nor old, but is always and 
everywhere true.  Even our Lord came neither to found a new 
church nor to create a new religion, but to do the things which 
had been foretold, and to fulfil in time what had been determined 
in eternity.  God has himself founded the church on catholic 
principles, or principles al-
413
                            ways and everywhere real principles.  
His church is necessarily catholic, because founded on catholic 
dogmas, and the dogmas are catholic, because they are universal 
and immutable principles, having their origin and ground in the 
Divine Being Himself, or in the creative act by which He produces 
and sustains all things.  Founded on universal and immutable 
principles, the church can never grow old or obsolete, but is the 
church for all times and Places, for all ranks and conditions of 
men.  Man cannot change either the church or the dogmas of faith, 
for they are founded in the highest reality, which is above him, 
over him, and independent of him.  Religion is above and 
independent of the state, and the state has nothing to do with 
the church or her dogmas, but to accept and conform to them as it 
does to any of the facts or principles of science, to a 
mathematical truth, or to a physical law.

But while the church, with her essential constitution, and her 
dogmas are founded in the Divine order, and are catholic and 
unalterable, the relations between the civil and ecclesiastical 
authorities may be changed or modified by the changes of time and 
place.  These relations have not been always the same, but have 
dif-
414
   fered in different ages and countries.  During the first three 
centuries of our era the church had no legal status, and was 
either connived at or persecuted by the state.  Under the 
Christian emperors she was recognized by the civil law; her 
prelates had exclusive jurisdiction in mixed civil and 
ecclesiastical questions, and were made, in some sense, civil 
magistrates, and paid as such by the empire.  Under feudalism, 
the prelates received investiture as princes and barons, and 
formed alone, or in connection with the temporal lords, an estate 
in the kingdom.  The Pope became a temporal prince and suzerain, 
at one time, of a large part of Europe, and exercised the 
arbitratorship in all grave questions between Christian 
sovereigns themselves, and between them and their subjects.  
Since the downfall of feudalism and the establishment of modern 
centralized monarchy, the church has been robbed of the greater 
part of her temporal possessions, and deprived, in most 
countries, of all civil functions, and treated by the state 
either as an enemy or as a slave.

In all the sectarian and schismatic states of the Old World, the 
national church is held in strict subjection to the civil 
authority, as in Great Britain and Russia, and is the slave of
415
the state; in the other states of Europe, as France, Austria, 
Spain, and Italy, she is treated with distrust by the civil 
government, and allowed hardly a shadow of freedom and 
independence.  In France, which has the proud title of eldest 
daughter of the church, Catholics, as such, are not freer than 
they are in Turkey.  All religious are said to be free, and all 
are free, except the religion of the majority of Frenchmen.  The 
emperor, because nominally a Catholic, takes it upon himself to 
concede the church just as much and just as little freedom in the 
empire as he judges expedient for his own secular interests.  In 
Italy, Spain, Portugal, Mexico, and the Central and South 
American states, the policy of the civil authorities is the same, 
or worse.  It may be safely asserted that, except in the United 
States, the church is either held by the civil power in 
subjection, or treated as an enemy.  The relation is not that of 
union and harmony, but that of antagonism, to the grave detriment 
of both religion and civilization.

It is impossible, even if it were desirable, to restore the 
mixture of civil and ecclesiastical governments which obtained in 
the Middle Ages; and a total separation of church and state, even 
as corporations, would, in the pres-
416
                                   ent state of men's minds in 
Europe, be construed, if approved by the church, into a sanction 
by her of political atheism, or the right of the civil power to 
govern according to its own will and pleasure in utter disregard 
of the law of God, the moral order, or the immutable distinctions 
between right and wrong.  It could only favor the absolutism of 
the state, and put the temporal in the place of the spiritual.  
Hence, the Holy Father includes the proposition of the entire 
separation of church and state in the Syllabus of Errors 
condemned in his Encyclical, dated at Rome, December 8, 1864.  
Neither the state nor the people, elsewhere than in the United 
States, can understand practically such separation in any other 
sense than the complete emancipation of our entire secular life 
from the law of God, or the Divine order, which is the real 
order.  It is not the union of church and state--that is, the 
union, or identity rather, of religious and political 
principles--that it is desirable to get rid of, but the disunion 
or antagonism of church and state.  But this is nowhere possible 
out of the United States; for nowhere else is the state organized 
on catholic principles, or capable of acting, when acting from 
its own constitution, in harmony with a really catholic church, 
or the religious order
417
                       really existing, in relation to which all 
things are created and governed.  Nowhere else is it practicable, 
at present, to maintain between the two powers their normal 
relations.

But what is not practicable in the Old World is perfectly 
practicable in the New.  The state here being organized in 
accordance with catholic principles, there can be no antagonism 
between it and the church.  Though operating in different 
spheres, both are, in their respective spheres, developing and 
applying to practical life the one and the same Divine Idea.  The 
church can trust the state, and the state can trust the church.  
Both act from the same principle to one and the same end.  Each 
by its own constitution co-operates with, aids, and completes the 
other.  It is true the church is not formally established as the 
civil law of the land, nor is it necessary that she should be; 
because there is nothing in the state that conflicts with her 
freedom and independence, with her dogmas or her irreformable 
canons.  The need of establishing the church by law, and 
protecting her by legal pains and penalties, as is still done in 
most countries, can exist only in a barbarous or semi-barbarous 
state of society, where the state is not organized on catholic 
principles, or the civilization is based on false 
418
                                                  principles, and 
in its development tends not to the real or Divine order of 
things.  When the state is constituted in harmony with that 
order, it is carried onward by the force of its own internal 
constitution in a catholic direction, and a church establishment, 
or what is called a state religion, would be an anomaly, or a 
superfluity.  The true religion is in the heart of the state, as 
its informing principle and real interior life.  The external 
establishment, by legal enactment of the church, would afford her 
no additional protection, add nothing to her power and efficacy, 
and effect nothing for faith or piety--neither of which can be 
forced, because both must, from their nature, be free-will 
offerings to God.

In the United States, false religions are legally as free as the 
true religion; but all false religions being one-sided, 
sophistical, and uncatholic, are opposed by the principles of the 
state, which tend, by their silent but effective workings, to 
eliminate them.  The American state recognizes only the catholic 
religion.  It eschews all sectarianism, and none of the sects 
have been able to get their peculiarities incorporated into its 
constitution or its laws.  The state conforms to what each holds 
that is catholic, that is always and everywhere religion; and 
what
419
     ever is not catholic it leaves, as outside of its province, 
to live or die, according to its own inherent vitality or want of 
vitality.  The state conscience is catholic, not sectarian; hence 
it is that the utmost freedom can be allowed to all religions, 
the false as well as the true; for the state, being catholic in 
its constitution, can never suffer the adherents of the false to 
oppress the consciences of the adherents of the true.  The church 
being free, and the state harmonizing with her, catholicity has, 
in the freedom of both, all the protection it needs, all the 
security it can ask, and all the support it can, in the nature of 
the case receive from external institutions, or from social and 
political organizations.

This freedom may not be universally wise or prudent, for all 
nations may not be prepared for it: all may not have attained 
their majority.  The church, as well as the state, must deal with 
men and nations as they are, not as they are not.  To deal with a 
child as with an adult, or with a barbarous nation as with a 
civilized nation, would be only acting a lie.  The church cannot 
treat men as free men where they are not free men, nor appeal to 
reason in those in whom reason is undeveloped.  She must adapt 
her discipline to the age, condition, and culture of individuals, 
and
420
    to the greater or less progress of nations in civilization.  
She herself remains always the same in her constitution, her 
authority, and her faith; but varies her discipline with the 
variations of time and place.  Many of her canons, very proper 
and necessary in one age, cease to be so in another, and many 
which are needed in the Old World would be out of place in the 
New World.  Under the American system, she can deal with the 
people as free men, and trust them as freemen, because free men 
they are.  The freeman asks, why? and the reason why must be 
given him, or his obedience fails to be secured.  The simple 
reason that the church commands will rarely satisfy him; he would 
know why she commands this or that.  The full-grown free man 
revolts at blind obedience, and he regards all obedience as in 
some measure blind for which he sees only an extrinsic command.  
Blind obedience even to the authority of the church cannot be 
expected of the people reared under the American system, not 
because they are filled with the spirit of disobedience, but 
because they insist that obedience shall be rationabile 
obsequium, an act of the understanding, not of the will or the 
affections alone.  They are trained to demand a reason for the 
command given them, to dis-
421
                          tinguish between the law and the person 
of the magistrate.  They can obey God, but not man, and they must 
see that the command given has its reason in the Divine order, or 
the intrinsic catholic reason of things, or they will not yield 
it a full, entire, and hearty obedience.  The reason that 
suffices for the child does not suffice for the adult, and the 
reason that suffices for barbarians does not suffice for civilized 
men, or that suffices for nations in the infancy of their 
civilization does not suffice for them in its maturity.  The 
appeal to external authority was much less frequent under the 
Roman Empire than in the barbarous ages that followed its 
downfall, when the church became mixed up with the state.

This trait of the American character is not uncatholic.  An 
intelligent, free, willing obedience, yielded from personal 
conviction, after seeing its reasonableness, its justice, its 
logic in the Divine order--the obedience of a free man, not of a 
slave--is far more consonant to the spirit of the church, and far 
more acceptable to God, than simple, blind obedience; and a 
people capable of yielding it stand far higher in the scale of 
civilization than the people that must be governed as children or 
barbarians.  It is possible that the people of the Old World
422
                                                             are 
not prepared for the regimen of freedom in religion any more than 
they are prepared for freedom in politics; for they have been 
trained only to obey external authority, and are not accustomed 
to look on religion as having its reason in the real order, or in 
the reason of things.  They understand no reason for obedience 
beyond the external command, and do not believe it possible to 
give or to understand the reason why the command itself is given.  
They regard the authority of the church as a thing apart, and see 
no way by which faith and reason can be harmonized.  They look 
upon them as antagonistic forces rather than as integral elements 
of one and the same whole.  Concede them the regimen of freedom, 
and their religion has no support but in their good-will, their 
affections, their associations, their habits, and their 
prejudices.  It has no root in their rational convictions, and 
when they begin to reason they begin to doubt.  This is not the 
state of things that is desirable, but it cannot be remedied 
under the political regime established elsewhere than in the 
United States.  In every state in the world, except the American, 
the civil constitution is sophistical, and violates, more or 
less, the logic of things; and, therefore, in no one of them can 
the peo-
423
       ple receive a thoroughly dialectic training, or an 
education in strict conformity to the real order.  Hence, in them 
all, the church is more or less obstructed in her operations, and 
prevented from carrying out in its fulness her own Divine Idea.  
She does the best she can in the circumstances and with the 
materials with which she is supplied, and exerts herself 
continually to bring individuals and nations into harmony with 
her Divine law: but still her life in the midst of the nations is 
a struggle, a warfare.

The United States being dialectically constituted, and founded on 
real catholic, not sectarian or sophistical principles, presents 
none of these obstacles, and must, in their progressive 
development or realization of their political idea, put an end to 
this warfare, in so far as a warfare between church and state, 
and leave the church in her normal position in society, in which 
she can, without let or hindrance, exert her free spirit, and 
teach and govern men by the Divine law as free men.  She may 
encounter unbelief, misbelief, ignorance, and indifference in 
few, or in many; but these, deriving no support from the state, 
which tends constantly to eliminate them, must gradually give way 
before her invincible logic, her divine charity, the
424
                                                     truth and 
reality of things, and the intelligence, activity, and zeal of 
her ministers.  The American people are, on the surface, 
sectarians or indifferentists; but they are, in reality, less 
uncatholic than the people of any other country because they are, 
in their intellectual and moral development, nearer to the real 
order, or, in the higher and broader sense of the word more truly 
civilized.  The multitude of sects that obtain may excite 
religious compassion for those who are carried away by them, for 
men can be saved or attain to their eternal destiny only by 
truth, or conformity to Him who said, "I am the way, the truth, 
and the life;" but in relation to the national destiny they need 
excite no alarm, no uneasiness, for underlying them all is more 
or less of catholic truth, and the vital forces of the national 
life repel them, in so far as they are sectarian and not 
catholic, as substances that cannot be assimilated to the 
national life.  The American state being catholic in its organic 
principles, as is all real religion, and the church being free, 
whatever is anticatholic, or uncatholic, is without any support 
in either, and having none, either in reality or in itself, it 
must necessarily fall and gradually disappear.

The sects themselves have a half unavowed
425
                                          conviction that they 
cannot subsist forever as sects, if unsupported by the civil 
authority.  They are free, but do not feel safe in the United 
States.  They know the real church is catholic, and that they 
themselves are none of them catholic.  The most daring among them 
even pretends to be no more than a "branch" of the catholic 
church.  They know that only the catholic church can withstand 
the pressure of events and survive the shocks of time, and hence 
everywhere their movements to get rid of their sectarianism and 
to gain a catholic character.  They hold conventions of delegates 
from the whole sectarian world, form "unions," "alliances," and 
"associations;" but, unhappily for their success, the catholic 
church does not originate in convention, but is founded by the 
Word made flesh, and sustained by the indwelling Holy Ghost.  The 
most they can do, even with the best dispositions in the world, 
is to create a confederation, and confederated sects are 
something very different from a church inherently one and 
catholic.  It is no more the catholic church than the late 
Southern Confederacy was the American state.  The sectarian 
combinations may do some harm, may injure many souls, and retard, 
for a time, the progress of civilization; but in a state 
organized in ac-
426
               cordance with catholic principles, and left to 
themselves, they are powerless against the national destiny, and 
must soon wither and die as branches severed from the vine.

Such being the case, no sensible Catholic can imagine that the 
church needs any physical force against the sects, except to 
repel actual violence, and protect her in that freedom of speech 
and possession which is the right of all before the state.  What 
are called religious establishments are needed only where either 
the state is barbarous or the religion is sectarian.  Where the 
state, in its intrinsic constitution, is in accordance with 
catholic principles, as in the United States, the church has all 
she needs or can receive.  The state can add nothing more to her 
power or her security in her moral and spiritual warfare with 
sectarianism, and any attempt to give her more would only weaken 
her as against the sects, place her in a false light, partially 
justify their hostility to her, render effective their 
declamations against her, mix her up unnecessarily with political 
changes, interests, and passions, and distract the attention of 
her ministers from their proper work as churchmen, and impose on 
them the duties of politicians and statesmen.  Where there is 
nothing in the state hostile to the church,
427
                                            where she is free to 
act according to her own constitution and laws, and exercise her 
own discipline on her own spiritual subjects, civil enactments in 
her favor or against the sects may embarrass or impede her 
operations, but cannot aid her, for she can advance no farther 
than she wins the heart and convinces the understanding.  A 
spiritual work can, in the nature of things, be effected only by 
spiritual means.  The church wants freedom in relation to the 
state--nothing more; for all her power comes immediately from 
God, without any intervention or mediation of the state.

The United States, constituted in accordance with the real order 
of things, and founded on principles which have their origin and 
ground in the principles on which the church herself is founded, 
can never establish any one of the sects as the religion of the 
state, for that would violate their political constitution, and 
array all the other sects, as well as the church herself, against 
the government.  They cannot be called upon to establish the 
church by law, because she is already in their constitution as 
far as the state has in itself any relation with religion, and 
because to establish her in any other sense would be to make her 
one of the civil institutions of the,
428
                                      land, and to bring her 
under the control of the state, which were equally against her 
interest and her nature.

The religious mission of the United States is not then to 
establish the church by external law, or to protect her by legal 
disabilities, pains, and penalties against the sects, however 
uncatholic they may be; but to maintain catholic freedom, neither 
absorbing the state in the church nor the church in the state, 
but leaving each to move freely, according to its own nature, in 
the sphere assigned it in the eternal order of things.  Their 
mission separates church and state as external governing bodies, 
but unites them in the interior principles from which each 
derives its vitality and force.  Their union is in the intrinsic 
unity of principle, and in the fact that, though moving in 
different spheres, each obeys one and the same Divine law.  With 
this the Catholic, who knows what Catholicity means, is of course 
satisfied, for it gives the church all the advantage over the 
sects of the real over the unreal; and with this the sects have 
no right to be dissatisfied, for it subjects them to no 
disadvantage not inherent in sectarianism itself in presence of 
Catholicity, and without any support from the civil authority.

The effect of this mission of our country fully
429
                                                realized, would 
be to harmonize church and state, religion and politics, not by 
absorbing either in the other, or by obliterating the natural 
distinction between them, but by conforming both to the real or 
Divine order, which is supreme and immutable.  It places the two 
powers in their normal relation, which has hitherto never been 
done, because hitherto there never has been a state normally 
constituted.  The nearest approach made to the realization of the 
proper relations of church and state, prior to the birth of the 
American Republic, was in the Roman Empire under the Christian 
emperors; but the state had been perverted by paganism, and the 
emperors, inheriting the old pontifical power, could never be 
made to understand their own incompetency in spirituals, and 
persisted to the last in treating the church as a civil 
institution under their supervision and control, as does the 
Emperor of the French in France, even yet.  In the Middle Ages 
the state was so barbarously constituted that the church was 
obliged to supervise its administration, to mix herself up with 
the civil government, in order to infuse some intelligence into 
civil matters, and to preserve her own rightful freedom and 
independence.  When the states broke away from feudalism, they 
revived the Roman
430
                  constitution, and claimed the authority in 
ecclesiastical matters that had been exercised by the Roman 
Caesars, and the states that adopted a sectarian religion gave 
the sect adopted a civil establishment, and subjected it to the 
civil government, to which the sect not unwillingly consented, 
on condition that the civil authority excluded the church and all 
other sects, and made it the exclusive religion of the state, as 
in England, Scotland, Sweden, Denmark, Russia, and the states of 
Northern Germany.  Even yet the normal relations of church and 
state are nowhere practicable in the Old World; for everywhere 
either the state is more or less barbaric in its constitution, or 
the religion is sectarian, and the church as well as civilization 
is obliged, to struggle with antagonistic forces, for 
self-preservation.

There are formidable parties all over Europe at work to introduce 
what they take to be the American system; but constitutions are 
generated, not made--providential, not conventional.  Statesmen 
can only develop what is in the existing constitutions of their 
respective countries, and no European constitution contains all 
the elements of the American.  European Liberals mistake the 
American system, and, were they to succeed in their efforts, 
would not in-
431
            troduce it, but something more hostile to it than the 
governments and institutions they are warring against.  They 
start from narrow, sectarian, or infidel premises, and seek not 
freedom of worship, but freedom of denial.  They suppress the 
freedom of religion as the means of securing what they call 
religious liberty--imagine that they secure freedom of thought by 
extinguishing the light without which no thought is possible, and 
advance civilization by undermining its foundation.  The 
condemnation of their views and movements by the Holy Father in 
the Encyclical, which has excited so much hostility, may seem to 
superficial and unthinking Americans even, as a condemnation of 
our American system--indeed, as the condemnation of modern 
science, intelligence, and civilization itself; but whoever looks 
below the surface, has some insight into the course of events, 
understands the propositions and movements censured, and the 
sense in which they are censured, is well assured that the Holy 
Father has simply exercised his pastoral and teaching authority 
to save religion, society, science, and civilization from utter 
corruption or destruction.  The opinions, tendencies, and 
movements, directly or by implication censured, are the effect of 
narrow and superficial think-
432
                            ing, of partial and one-sided views, 
and are sectarian, sophistical, and hostile to all real progress, 
and tend, as far as they go, to throw society back into the 
barbarism from which, after centuries of toil and struggle, it is 
just beginning to emerge.  The Holy Father has condemned nothing 
that real philosophy, real science does not also condemn; 
nothing, in fact, that is not at war with the American system 
itself.  For the mass of the people, it were desirable that 
fuller explanations should be given of the sense in which the 
various propositions censured are condemned, for some of them are 
not, in every sense, false; but the explanations needed were 
expected by the Holy Father to be given by the bishops and 
prelates, to whom, not to the people, save through them, the 
Encyclical was addressed.  Little is to be hoped, and much is to 
be feared, for liberty, science, and civilization from European 
Liberalism, which has no real affinity with American territorial 
democracy and real civil and religious freedom.  But God and 
reality are present in the Old World as, well as in the New, and 
it will never do to restrict their power or freedom.

Whether the American people will prove faithful to their mission, 
and realize their destiny, or not, is known only to Him from whom
433
nothing is hidden.  Providence is free, and leaves always a space 
for human free-will.  The American people can fail, and will fail 
if they neglect the appointed means and conditions of success; 
but there is nothing in their present state or in their past 
history to render their failure probable.  They have in their 
internal constitution what Rome wanted, and they are in no danger 
of being crushed by exterior barbarism.  Their success as feeble 
colonies of Great Britain in achieving their national 
independence, and especially in maintaining, unaided, and against 
the real hostility of Great Britain and France, their national 
unity and integrity against a rebellion which, probably, no other 
people could have survived, gives reasonable assurance for their 
future.  The leaders of the rebellion, than whom none better knew 
or more nicely calculated the strength and resources of the 
Union, counted with certainty on success, and the ablest, the 
most experienced, and best informed statesmen of the Old World 
felt sure that the Republic was gone, and spoke of it as the late 
United States.  Not a few, even in the loyal States, who had no 
sympathy with the rebellion, believed it idle to think of 
suppressing it by force, and advised peace on the best terms that 
could be obtained.  But Ilium fuit
434
                                   was chanted too soon; the 
American people were equal to the emergency, and falsified the 
calculations and predictions of their enemies, and surpassed the 
expectations of their friends.

The attitude of the real American people during the fearful 
struggle affords additional confidence in their destiny.  With 
larger armies on foot than Napoleon ever commanded, with their 
line of battle stretching from ocean to ocean, across the whole 
breadth of the continent, they never, during four long years of 
alternate victories and defeats--and both unprecedentedly 
bloody--for a moment lost their equanimity, or appeared less 
calm, collected, tranquil, than in the ordinary times of peace.  
They not for a moment interrupted their ordinary routine of 
business or pleasure, or seemed conscious of being engaged in any 
serious struggle which required an effort.  There was no hurry, 
no bustle, no excitement, no fear, no misgiving.  They seemed to 
regard the war as a mere bagatelle, not worth being in earnest 
about.  The on-looker was almost angry with their apparent 
indifference, apparent insensibility, and doubted if they moved 
at all, Yet move they did: guided by an unerring instinct, they 
moved quietly on with an elemental force, in spite of a timid and 
hesitating administration, in spite of inexpe-
435
                                             rienced, 
over-cautious, incompetent, or blundering military commanders, 
whom they gently brushed aside, and desisted not till their 
object was gained, and they saw the flag of the Union floating 
anew in the breeze from the capitol of every State that dared 
secede.  No man could contemplate them without feeling that there 
was in them a latent power vastly superior to any which they 
judged it necessary to put forth.  Their success proves to all 
that what, prior to the war, was treated as American arrogance or 
self-conceit, was only the outspoken confidence in their destiny 
as a Providential people, conscious that to them is reserved the 
hegemony of the world.

Count de Maistre predicted early in the century the failure of 
the United States, because they have no proper name; but his 
prediction assumed what is not the fact.  The United States have 
a proper name by which all the world knows and calls them.  The 
proper name of the country is America: that of the people is 
Americans.  Speak of Americans simply, and nobody understands you 
to mean the people of Canada, Mexico, Brazil, Peru, Chile, 
Paraguay, but everybody understands you to mean the people of the 
United States.  The fact is significant, and foretells for the 
people of the United States a
436
                              continental destiny, as is also 
foreshadowed in the so-called "Monroe doctrine," which France, 
during our domestic troubles, was permitted, on condition of not 
intervening in our civil war in favor of the rebellion, to 
violate.

There was no statesmanship in proclaiming the "Monroe doctrine," 
for the statesman keeps always, as far as possible, his 
government free to act according to the exigencies of the case 
when it comes up, unembarrassed by previous declarations of 
principles.  Yet the doctrine only expresses the destiny of the 
American people, and which nothing but their own fault can 
prevent them from realizing in its own good time.  Napoleon will 
not succeed in his Mexican policy, and Mexico will add some 
fifteen or twenty new States to the American Union as soon as it 
is clearly for the interests of all parties that it should be 
done, and it can be done by mutual consent, without war or 
violence.  The Union will fight to maintain the integrity of her 
domain and the supremacy of her laws within it, but she can 
never, consistently with her principles or her interests, enter 
upon a career of war and conquest.  Her system is violated, 
endangered, not extended, by subjugating her neighbors, for 
subjugation and liberty go not together.  Annexation, when it
437
takes place, must be on terms of perfect equality and by the free 
act of the state annexed.  The Union can admit of no inequality 
of rights and franchises between the States of which it is 
composed.  The Canadian Provinces and the Mexican and Central 
American States, when annexed, must be as free as the original 
States of the Union, sharing alike in the power and the 
protection of the Republic--alike in its authority, its freedom, 
its grandeur, and its glory, as one free, independent, 
self-governing people.  They may gain much, but must lose nothing 
by annexation.

The Emperor Napoleon and his very respectable protege, 
Maximilian, an able man and a liberal-minded prince, can change 
nothing in the destiny of the United States, or of Mexico 
herself; no imperial government can be permanent beside the 
American Republic, no longer liable, since the abolition of 
slavery, to be distracted by sectional dissensions.  The States 
that seceded will soon, in some way, be restored to their rights 
and franchises in the Union, forming not the least patriotic 
portion of the American people; the negro question will be 
settled, or settle itself, as is most likely, by the melting away 
of the negro population before the influx of white laborers; all 
traces of the
438
              late contest in a very few years will be wiped out, 
the national debt paid, or greatly reduced, and the prosperity 
and strength of the Republic be greater than ever.  Its moral 
force will sweep away every imperial throne on the continent, 
without any effort or action on the part of the government.  
There can be no stable government in Mexico till every trace of 
the ecclesiastical policy established by the Council of the 
Indies is obliterated, and the church placed there on the same 
footing as in the United States; and that can hardly be done 
without annexation.  Maximilian cannot divest the church of her 
temporal possessions and place Protestants and Catholics on the 
same footing, without offending the present church party and 
deeply injuring religion, and that too without winning the 
confidence of the republican party.  In all Spanish and 
Portuguese America the relations between the church and state are 
abnormal, and exceedingly hurtful to both.  Religion is in a 
wretched condition, and politics in a worse condition still.  
There is no effectual remedy for either but in religious freedom, 
now impracticable, and to be rendered practicable by no European 
intervention, for that subjects religion to the state, the very 
source of the evils that now exist, instead of
439
                                               emancipating it 
from the state, and leaving it to act according to its own 
constitution and laws, as under the American system.

But the American people need not trouble themselves about their 
exterior expansion.  That will come of itself as fast as 
desirable.  Let them devote their attention to their internal 
destiny, to the realization of their mission within, and they 
will gradually see the Whole continent coming under their system, 
forming one grand nation, a really catholic nation, great, 
glorious, and free.


THE END.





End of this Project Gutenberg Etext of 
THE

AMERICAN REPUBLIC:

CONSTITUTION, TENDENCIES, AND DESTINY.

BY
O. A. BROWNSON, LL. D.